Selected quad for the lemma: word_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
word_n apostle_n scripture_n tradition_n 5,271 5 9.2621 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A61864 Presbyteries triall, or, The occasion and motives of conversion to the Catholique faith of a person of quality in Scotland ; to which is svbioyned, A little tovch-stone of the Presbyterian covenant W. S. (William Stuart), d. 1677.; W. S. (William Stuart), d. 1677. A little tovch-stone of the Scottish Covenant. 1657 (1657) Wing S6028; ESTC R26948 309,680 599

There are 30 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

infidelis_fw-la etc._n etc._n who_o they_o except_z au_o infidel_n will_v deny_v christ_n to_o have_v be_v in_o hell_n behold_v what_o in_o s._n augustius_fw-la judgement_n be_v all_o presbyterian_o who_o do_v contradict_v the_o prophecy_n which_o he_o say_v can_v be_v contradict_v and_o who_o understand_v it_o in_o a_o contrary_a sense_n which_o s._n peter_n do_v expound_v lest_o any_o man_n shall_v presume_v to_o understand_v it_o otherwise_o which_o be_v indeed_o to_o go_v against_o the_o scripture_n both_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n the_o holy_a father_n &_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o in_o a_o word_n as_o s._n augustin_n speak_v to_o be_v infidel_n s._n hierome_n expound_v that_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o 4._o to_o the_o ephesian_n ephes_n hier._n in_o cap._n 4._o ad_fw-la ephes_n and_o that_o he_o christ_n ascend_v what_o be_v it_o but_o because_o he_o descend_v also_o first_o into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n say_v the_o inferior_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v take_v for_o hell_n to_o which_o our_o lord_n &_o saviour_n do_v descend_v where_o it_o be_v also_o show_v for_o what_o end_n our_o saviour_n do_v descend_v he_o say_v s._n paul_n ascend_v on_o high_a do_v lead_v captivity_n captive_a and_o give_v gift_n to_o man_n upon_o which_o the_o same_o s._n hierome_n say_v our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n descend_v into_o hell_n that_o be_v victorious_a he_o may_v lead_v with_o himself_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o who_o be_v keep_v there_o enclose_v whence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o after_o his_o resurrection_n many_o body_n of_o the_o just_a be_v see_v in_o the_o holy_a city_n the_o apostle_n show_v the_o same_o truth_n in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n to_o the_o collossian_o 15._o coloss_n chap._n 2._o ver_fw-la 15._o where_o he_o say_v and_o christ_n spoil_v the_o principality_n &_o power_n have_v lead_v they_o confident_o in_o open_a show_n triumph_v they_o in_o himself_o i_o pass_v by_o for_o brevity_n sake_n 19_o pet._n 1_o ep._n c._n 3._o v._n 19_o some_o other_o passage_n as_o that_o of_o s._n peter_n how_o christ_n in_o his_o spirit_n do_v go_v down_o and_o preach_v unto_o the_o spirit_n in_o prison_n and_o the_o like_a which_o be_v understand_v by_o some_o of_o the_o holy_a father_n of_o christ_n descent_n to_o hell_n these_o already_o bring_v appear_v to_o i_o to_o be_v most_o clear_a &_o sufficient_a moreover_o i_o find_v s._n aug._n understand_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o good_a thief_n this_o day_n thou_o shall_v be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n far_o otherwise_o then_o the_o presbyterian_o do_v for_o he_o say_v non_fw-la ex_fw-la he_o verbis_fw-la &c_n &c_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v by_o these_o word_n dardan_n aug._n epist_n 57_o ad_fw-la dardan_n that_o paradise_n be_v in_o heaven_n for_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n be_v not_o to_o be_v in_o heaven_n to_o wit_n that_o day_n but_o in_o hell_n according_a to_o his_o soul_n and_o in_o the_o grave_n according_a to_o his_o flesh_n and_o a_o little_a beneath_o he_o subjoine_v the_o scripture_n clear_o show_v that_o he_o be_v in_o hell_n according_a to_o his_o soul_n but_o as_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n show_v out_o of_o the_o 87._o psalm_n he_o be_v so_o in_o hell_n that_o he_o be_v free_a among_o the_o dead_a and_o do_v there_o begin_v his_o triumph_n over_o all_o infernal_a power_n &_o principality_n and_o free_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o just_a from_o their_o captivity_n do_v carry_v they_o glorious_o with_o himself_o unto_o the_o heaven_n into_o which_o he_o do_v first_o enter_v and_o open_v they_o unto_o all_o true_a faithful_a christian_n for_o so_o it_o be_v fit_v that_o he_o who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n the_o church_n 18._o colos_n 1._o ver_fw-la 18._o the_o beginning_n the_o first_o bear_v of_o the_o dead_a as_o s._n paul_n speak_v &_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o these_o who_o be_v asleep_a 15.20_o 1._o cor._n 15.20_o may_z in_o all_o thing_n hold_v the_o primacy_n i_o know_v these_o thing_n be_v laugh_v at_o as_o if_o they_o be_v fable_n by_o the_o presbyterian_o who_o find_v their_o faith_n upon_o their_o own_o groundless_a fancy_n and_o will_v believe_v nothing_o which_o do_v not_o suit_n to_o their_o humour_n albeit_o it_o be_v most_o clear_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n so_o understand_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o so_o believe_v by_o the_o christian_a world_n but_o i_o intend_v god_n willing_a to_o prefer_v these_o solid_a ground_n to_o puritanical_a imagination_n which_o be_v without_o yea_o and_o against_o scripture_n the_o holy_a father_n and_o whole_a ancient_a church_n and_o last_o against_o the_o clear_a word_n of_o the_o creed_n as_o i_o see_v the_o true_a and_o clear_a sense_n of_o this_o article_n so_o i_o find_v that_o the_o minister_n have_v use_v many_o crooked_a wind_n &_o turn_n to_o obscure_v and_o deny_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o for_o first_o they_o have_v not_o stand_v to_o corrupt_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n 2._o they_o follow_v a_o sense_n invent_v by_o calvin_n which_o be_v not_o only_o false_a but_o by_o many_o esteem_v blasphemous_a 3._o when_o for_o shame_n they_o have_v abandon_v that_o sense_n the_o presbyterian_o have_v of_o late_o invent_v a_o new_a one_o not_o so_o impious_a but_o very_o ridiculous_a and_o last_o to_o complete_a the_o work_n they_o have_v deny_v the_o whole_a creed_n to_o be_v apostolical_a which_o be_v the_o cleanly_a way_n that_o have_v be_v yet_o use_v for_o their_o corrupt_v of_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n beza_n calvin_n entire_a brother_n may_v carry_v the_o prize_n for_o in_o the_o bibles_n of_o his_o translation_n he_o turn_v these_o word_n 2._o act_n 31._o thou_o will_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o hell_n after_o this_o manner_n thou_o will_v not_o leave_v my_o body_n in_o the_o grave_n and_o when_o this_o manifest_a corruption_n of_o god_n word_n be_v object_v to_o he_o by_o protestant_n he_o answer_v in_o defence_n of_o his_o version_n against_o sebastian_n castalio_n 12._o beza_n count_v sebast_n cast_n ap_fw-mi bellar._n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la anima_fw-la cha_n c._n 12._o say_v no_o man_n can_v doubt_v but_o here_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o body_n &_o grave_n unless_o one_o will_v be_v blind_a in_o the_o midday_n this_o must_v be_v a_o strange_a light_n or_o rather_o a_o strong_a illusion_n which_o the_o presbyterian_o alone_o see_v but_o the_o reason_n which_o beza_n give_v there_o a_o little_a before_o for_o his_o change_n soul_n into_o body_n and_o hell_n into_o grave_n be_v very_o remarkable_a i_o do_v not_o this_o rash_o say_v he_o since_o we_o see_v that_o this_o place_n be_v chief_o wrest_v by_o the_o papist_n for_o establish_v their_o limb_n and_o the_o ancient_n also_o devise_v from_o it_o the_o descent_n of_o christ_n soul_n into_o hell_n our_o presbyterian_o in_o scotland_n be_v one_o degree_n inferior_a to_o beza_n for_o they_o do_v not_o corrupt_v two_o word_n as_o he_o do_v but_o only_o one_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o great_a bible_n print_v at_o edinburgh_n by_o andrew_n hart_n where_o they_o read_v thus_o the_o foresay_a text_n thou_o will_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o the_o grave_n put_v grave_n for_o hell_n which_o corruption_n be_v amend_v in_o the_o new_a translation_n that_o be_v make_v by_o order_n of_o king_n james_n who_o say_v in_o the_o conference_n at_o hampton-court_n that_o he_o have_v never_o see_v a_o true_a and_o sincere_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n in_o english_a but_o of_o all_o these_o he_o have_v see_v that_o of_o geneva_n be_v the_o worst_a have_v thus_o corrupt_v the_o text_n they_o do_v also_o invent_v corrupt_a sense_n of_o it_o calvin_n the_o great_a foundator_n of_o presbytery_n understand_v by_o christ_n descent_n to_o hell_n that_o he_o suffer_v in_o his_o soul_n the_o pain_n of_o a_o damn_a man_n and_o that_o doubt_v of_o his_o salvation_n he_o uttete_v word_n of_o desperation_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v in_o his_o institution_n diros_fw-la in_o anima_fw-la cruciatus_fw-la 10._o cal._n lib._n 2._o instit_fw-la cap._n 16._o sect_n 10._o damnati_fw-la ac_fw-la perditihominis_fw-la pertulit_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v he_o suffer_v in_o his_o soul_n the_o horrible_a pain_n of_o a_o damn_a &_o lose_v man_n and_o write_v on_o the_o 27._o chap._n of_o s._n matthew_n ver_fw-la 46._o he_o say_v that_o a_o word_n of_o desperation_n do_v fall_v from_o christ_n and_o a_o little_a after_o sow_n see_v say_v he_o 46._o cal._n in_o 27._o math._n v._o 46._o that_o he_o be_v vex_v on_o all_o side_n that_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o desperation_n he_o cease_v from_o call_v upon_o god_n which_o be_v to_o renounce_v salvation_n o_o most_o strange_a doctrine_n which_o i_o find_v to_o be_v condemn_v by_o many_o
to_o consider_v these_o passage_n which_o they_o do_v ordinary_o bring_v and_o cote_n on_o the_o margin_n of_o their_o confession_n and_o i_o find_v that_o not_o one_o of_o they_o contain_v in_o express_a word_n the_o presbyterian_a article_n contradictory_n to_o the_o papist_n as_o may_v appear_v to_o any_o man_n who_o will_v read_v the_o word_n these_o passage_n be_v three_o and_o the_o first_o be_v in_o s._n john_n who_o say_v as_o many_o as_o receive_v he_o he_o give_v they_o power_n to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n the_o two_o other_o be_v in_o s._n paul_n 5.1_o john_n ch_n 1._o v._n 12._o rom._n 3.28_o rom._n 5.1_o who_o say_v we_o conclude_v or_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a translation_n we_o account_v a_o man_n to_o be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n and_o again_o be_v iustify_v therefore_o by_o faith_n let_v we_o have_v peace_n towards_o god_n now_o in_o none_o of_o these_o place_n can_v i_o find_v it_o write_v that_o man_n be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n only_o or_o as_o it_o be_v in_o their_o new_a confession_n faith_n be_v the_o alone_a instrument_n of_o justification_n i_o find_v indeed_o that_o the_o scripture_n say_v there_o that_o man_n be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n but_o i_o can_v not_o find_v where_o it_o say_v by_o faith_n only_o that_o word_n only_o or_o alone_o which_o be_v the_o main_a point_n in_o this_o matter_n can_v be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n albeit_o m._n knox_n in_o his_o foresay_a sermon_n false_o pretend_v that_o it_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n i_o admire_v to_o see_v both_o our_o first_o and_o last_o reformer_n after_o such_o huge_a pretence_n to_o want_v express_a scripture_n for_o this_o main_a article_n of_o their_o religion_n but_o i_o admire_v much_o more_o when_o i_o find_v the_o catholic_a article_n which_o be_v flat_o contradictory_n to_o the_o protestant_n to_o be_v express_o in_o the_o scripture_n s._n james_n say_v 24._o james_n 2.21_o &_o 24._o abraham_n our_o father_n be_v he_o not_o iustify_v by_o work_n offer_v isaac_n his_o son_n upon_o the_o altar_n and_o again_o do_v you_o see_v that_o by_o work_n a_o man_n be_v iustify_v and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o where_o s._n james_n direct_o contradict_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o protestant_n for_o they_o say_v a_o man_n be_v not_o iustify_v by_o work_n but_o by_o faith_n only_o and_o s._n james_n say_v a_o man_n be_v iustify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o i_o wonder_v how_o we_o can_v brag_v so_o much_o that_o we_o have_v always_o the_o scripture_n for_o we_o against_o the_o papist_n and_o yet_o when_o i_o try_v the_o matter_n i_o find_v ever_o hitherto_o the_o contrary_a as_o may_v be_v find_v by_o any_o man_n who_o will_v not_o renounce_v his_o sense_n of_o hear_v and_o see_v but_o to_o find_v this_o in_o other_o point_n i_o do_v not_o think_v it_o so_o strange_a as_o in_o the_o present_a which_o be_v call_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o wherein_o we_o do_v so_o much_o glory_n against_o the_o papist_n who_o have_v much_o the_o better_a of_o we_o if_o we_o will_v acknowledge_v the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n and_o stand_v to_o they_o but_o the_o presbyterian_o pretend_v that_o although_o their_o article_n be_v not_o word_n by_o word_n in_o scripture_n yet_o the_o equivalent_a be_v there_o when_o s._n paul_n say_v a_o man_n be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n which_o they_o say_v be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v by_o faith_n only_o i_o find_v many_o weighty_a reason_n against_o this_o ministerial_a gloss_n 1._o at_o the_o beginning_n of_o their_o reformation_n they_o promise_v we_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n and_o now_o they_o give_v we_o for_o it_o their_o guess_n or_o the_o word_n of_o man_n which_o be_v a_o weak_a ground_n of_o faith_n 2._o which_o be_v yet_o worse_o their_o word_n &_o interpretation_n be_v in_o express_a term_n against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o another_o place_n to_o wit_n in_o s._n james_n as_o we_o have_v see_v 3._o they_o affirm_v that_o all_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v clear_o contain_v in_o scripture_n how_o come_v it_o then_o that_o this_o most_o necessary_a &_o substantial_a point_n which_o they_o call_v the_o life_n of_o christianity_n be_v not_o there_o yea_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o not_o only_o it_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n but_o the_o quite_o contrary_a be_v word_n by_o word_n in_o scripture_n and_o that_o not_o simple_o affirm_v but_o prove_v by_o many_o reason_n &_o example_n and_o these_o who_o affirm_v the_o contrary_n be_v compare_v to_o devil_n 4._o the_o holy_a father_n &_o primitive_a church_n do_v never_o understand_v the_o scripture_n in_o that_o sense_n but_o in_o the_o contrary_n how_o then_o can_v i_o in_o sense_n consider_v these_o thing_n make_v the_o minister_n word_n and_o interpretation_n which_o be_v not_o scripture_n yea_o which_o be_v against_o scripture_n and_o against_o the_o holy_a father_n &_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o be_v the_o principal_a article_n of_o my_o faith_n s._n augustin_n show_v that_o some_o man_n in_o the_o apostle_n own_o time_n do_v misinterpret_v the_o same_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n as_o the_o presbyterian_o do_v now_o and_o make_v it_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o same_o error_n 7._o aug._n de_fw-fr gr_fw-fr &_o lib._n arb_n cap._n 7._o but_o man_n say_v he_o not_o understand_v what_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o account_v a_o man_n iustify_v by_o faith_n without_o work_n thought_n that_o he_o say_v faith_n will_v suffice_v a_o man_n albeit_o he_o live_v ill_a and_o have_v no_o good_a work_n which_o god_n forbid_v that_o the_o vessel_n of_o election_n shall_v think_v etc._n etc._n second_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n show_v that_o to_o root_v out_o the_o error_n of_o those_o who_o by_o misconstrue_v s._n paul_n word_n do_v gather_v from_o they_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o the_o other_o apostle_n do_v principal_o direct_v the_o intention_n of_o their_o epistle_n s._n peter_n say_v he_o 14._o aug._n lib._n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o oper_n c._n 14._o know_v that_o some_o wicked_a man_n take_v occasion_n from_o some_o obscure_a sentence_n of_o s._n paul_n as_o be_v secure_a of_o their_o salvation_n which_o be_v in_o faith_n have_v no_o care_n to_o live_v well_o give_v advertisement_n that_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n in_o his_o epistle_n hard_o to_o be_v understand_v which_o man_n pervert_v as_o they_o do_v the_o other_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o perdition_n see_v upon_o what_o a_o dangerous_a ground_n the_o principal_a article_n of_o our_o reformation_n be_v found_v and_o how_o dangerous_a also_o itself_o be_v but_o s._n james_n ibid._n aug._n ibid._n say_v s._n augustin_n be_v so_o high_o offend_v with_o these_o man_n who_o think_v that_o faith_n without_o work_n can_v avail_v unto_o salvation_n that_o he_o compare_v they_o even_o to_o devil_n and_o then_o have_n bring_v these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n thou_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n thou_o do_v well_o the_o devil_n also_o believe_v &_o tremble_v he_o subjoin_v quid_fw-la verius_fw-la brevius_fw-la vehementius_fw-la dici_fw-la potuit_fw-la what_o can_v be_v say_v more_o true_o more_o brief_o &_o efficacious_o thus_o s._n augustin_n and_o that_o he_o alone_o do_v not_o condemn_v this_o error_n &_o maintain_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n opposite_a to_o it_o 54._o cent._n mag._n cent_n 23._o 4._o 5._o cap._n 4._o aug_n haeres_fw-la 54._o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o centurist_n who_o for_o this_o cause_n tax_v the_o most_o ancient_a father_n as_o s._n clement_n origen_n s._n cyprian_n s._n hierome_n s._n ambrose_n augustin_n chrysostome_n &_o many_o more_o moreover_o the_o same_o s._n augustin_n show_v that_o this_o error_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o be_v the_o ancient_a heresy_n of_o eunomius_n 20._o iren._n count_v haeres_fw-la c._n 20._o and_o s._n ireneus_fw-la ascribe_v it_o also_o to_o simon_n magus_n and_o yet_o this_o ancient_a heresy_n against_o the_o scripture_n &_o the_o holy_a father_n be_v obtrude_v upon_o we_o as_o the_o principal_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n by_o our_o reformer_n who_o yet_o pretend_v to_o believe_v nothing_o but_o pure_a scripture_n therefore_o i_o resolve_v by_o god_n grace_n not_o to_o believe_v any_o long_o such_o a_o wicked_a opinion_n as_o the_o principal_a article_n of_o my_o religion_n but_o upon_o the_o contrary_a i_o intend_v to_o embrace_v &_o follow_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n opposite_a to_o it_o which_o i_o find_v to_o be_v in_o express_a term_n in_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v so_o understand_v and_o believe_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n i_o be_fw-mi much_o
confirm_v in_o this_o resolution_n when_o i_o underslood_n how_o luther_n &_o calvin_n have_v no_o scripture_n for_o they_o but_o against_o they_o have_v gross_o abuse_v it_o to_o maintain_v their_o error_n for_o luther_n the_o first_o apostle_n in_o this_o last_o age_n of_o this_o new_a doctrine_n do_v two_o notable_a injury_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o see_v that_o this_o prime_a article_n of_o his_o faith_n be_v not_o express_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n by_o a_o unparalleled_a presumption_n he_o add_v the_o word_n sola_fw-la or_o alone_o to_o the_o scripture_n in_o his_o german_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n and_o whereas_o s._n paul_n say_v we_o account_v a_o man_n iustify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n he_o make_v he_o say_v by_o faith_n alone_o and_o when_o this_o high_a temerity_n of_o add_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v object_v to_o he_o d●m_fw-la luth._o tom_n 5._o germ._n fol._n 141._o &_o d●m_fw-la he_o defend_v it_o with_o most_o insolent_a word_n say_v that_o a_o papist_n and_o a_o ass_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o that_o the_o word_n sola_fw-la shall_v remain_v in_o his_o bible_n although_o all_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v go_v mad_a and_o be_v transform_v to_o in_o ass_n the_o second_o injury_n that_o he_o do_v to_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o by_o addition_n but_o by_o diminution_n wherein_o he_o be_v much_o more_o liberal_a then_o in_o the_o first_o for_o he_o add_v only_o one_o word_n but_o he_o take_v away_o many_o hundred_o because_o find_v that_o the_o word_n above_o cite_v of_o s._n james_n epistle_n be_v clear_o &_o express_o against_o his_o doctrine_n he_o expunge_v the_o whole_a epistle_n out_o of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n genes_n luth_n in_o praef_n in_o novu_o n_o test_n luth_n in_o cap._n 22._o genes_n call_v it_o a_o epistle_n of_o straw_n unworthy_a the_o spirit_n of_o a_o apostle_n yea_o he_o arrive_v to_o that_o impudence_n that_o he_o say_v the_o author_n of_o that_o epistle_n delirat_fw-la that_o be_v dote_v or_o rave_v by_o these_o two_o practice_n i_o be_v move_v to_o think_v that_o luther_n can_v not_o be_v the_o second_o elias_n the_o restorer_n of_o purity_n &_o true_a religion_n who_o will_v not_o only_o reform_v the_o church_n but_o also_o the_o scripture_n yea_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o he_o have_v incur_v not_o one_o but_o both_o the_o curse_n threaten_v by_o s._n john_n for_o add_v to_o and_o pare_v from_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o this_o i_o perceive_v also_o what_o little_a esteem_n they_o make_v of_o the_o scripture_n when_o it_o make_v against_o their_o error_n calvin_n go_v more_o subtle_o to_o work_v for_o although_o he_o follow_v luther_n doctrine_n of_o justification_n yet_o he_o neither_o add_v the_o word_n sola_n to_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n neither_o do_v he_o deny_v s._n james_n epistle_n to_o be_v canonical_a but_o what_o luther_n add_v to_o the_o letter_n calvin_n add_v to_o the_o sense_n and_o what_o luther_n deny_v the_o other_o corrupt_v for_o calvin_n will_v have_v justification_n by_o faith_n only_o to_o be_v as_o firm_o believe_v as_o if_o the_o word_n only_o be_v there_o in_o scripture_n which_o indeed_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o have_v add_v with_o luther_n that_o word_n to_o the_o scripture_n then_o the_o word_n of_o s._n james_n which_o be_v clear_o opposite_a to_o his_o error_n and_o for_o which_o luther_n do_v reject_v the_o whole_a epistle_n he_o do_v so_o corrupt_a with_o new_a sense_n which_o luther_n more_o gross_a head_n can_v not_o invent_v that_o they_o pass_v many_o man_n sense_n &_o understanding_n too_o and_o be_v against_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n &_o clear_o against_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n for_o he_o say_v faith_n alone_o do_v justify_v but_o not_o alone_o some_o other_o of_o his_o scholar_n explain_v it_o thus_o fides_fw-la sola_fw-la iustificat_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la solitaria_fw-la other_o say_v faith_n do_v justify_v and_o not_o work_n but_o yet_o faith_n not_o without_o work_n or_o a_o man_n be_v iustify_v with_o work_n but_o not_o by_o work_n and_o work_n be_v the_o mean_n but_o not_o the_o cause_n of_o justification_n but_o all_o these_o invention_n be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o s._n james._n for_o he_o say_v man_n be_v iustify_v by_o work_n &_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o he_o do_v not_o say_v man_n be_v iustify_v with_o work_n but_o by_o work_n he_o do_v not_o say_v he_o be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n only_o but_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o and_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n and_o expression_n that_o he_o ascribe_v our_o justification_n to_o faith_n he_o ascrib_n it_o also_o unto_o work_n he_o neither_o speak_v of_o cause_n nor_o mean_n these_o be_v the_o minister_n word_n and_o not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v not_o clear_v but_o render_v more_o obscure_a by_o they_o it_o be_v make_v appear_v to_o i_o that_o the_o question_n at_o first_o between_o the_o catholic_n &_o luther_n be_v whether_o good_a work_n be_v in_o any_o respect_n necessary_a to_o our_o justification_n and_o not_o whether_o they_o be_v require_v as_o cause_n or_o condition_n luther_n say_v they_o be_v in_o no_o wise_a necessary_a or_o else_o none_o can_v be_v iustify_v since_o the_o best_a work_n of_o the_o great_a saint_n be_v mortal_a sin_n and_o in_o this_o he_o speak_v consequential_o to_o his_o principle_n but_o calvin_n find_v that_o the_o catholic_n by_o innumerable_a scripture_n and_o particular_o by_o that_o place_n of_o s._n james_n prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n unto_o justification_n he_o invent_v a_o distinction_n not_o to_o clear_v but_o to_o confound_v the_o matter_n that_o good_a work_n be_v necessary_a but_o not_o as_o cause_n and_o faith_n be_v the_o only_a cause_n of_o justification_n and_o this_o he_o do_v also_o very_o unreasonable_o against_o the_o principle_n which_o he_o hold_v common_a with_o luther_n to_o wit_n that_o all_o our_o best_a action_n be_v deadly_a sin_n for_o if_o good_a work_n be_v in_o any_o manner_n necessary_a how_o can_v any_o be_v iustify_v according_a to_o calvin_n who_o maintain_v there_o can_v be_v no_o good_a work_n but_o that_o all_o be_v mortal_a sin_n for_o if_o a_o condition_n be_v necessary_a to_o any_o effect_n then_o if_o the_o condition_n be_v not_o fulfil_v the_o effect_n can_v be_v produce_v as_o approximation_n of_o wood_n unto_o the_o fire_n be_v ordinary_o call_v the_o condition_n without_o which_o the_o wood_n can_v not_o take_v fire_n therefore_o as_o the_o wood_n if_o it_o be_v not_o put_v near_o the_o fire_n will_v not_o conceive_v fire_n so_o also_o if_o good_a work_n be_v a_o necessary_a condition_n unto_o justification_n as_o calvin_n pretend_v no_o man_n can_v be_v iustify_v since_o according_a to_o he_o there_o can_v be_v no_o good_a work_n therefore_o calvin_n speak_v very_o inconsequential_o if_o not_o also_o false_o moreover_o it_o be_v show_v i_o that_o the_o lutheran_n be_v so_o high_o offend_v with_o these_o new_a gloss_n of_o calvin_n &_o his_o scholar_n that_o they_o call_v they_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o new_a papist_n more_o pernicious_a than_o these_o of_o the_o old_a and_o illyricus_n rom._n illyr_n in_o praef_n ep_v ad_fw-la rom._n a_o famous_a lutheran_n do_v not_o stand_v to_o call_v these_o calvinist_n seducer_n who_o by_o diverse_a way_n say_v he_o will_v elude_v the_o proposition_n of_o s._n paul_n etc._n etc._n for_o this_o cause_n the_o lutheran_n deny_v all_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n unto_o salvation_n either_o as_o mean_n or_o cause_n for_o this_o they_o profess_v at_o the_o conference_n of_o altenberg_n 75._o coll._n all_o ten_o col_fw-fr 4_o f._n 75._o we_o conclude_v say_v they_o with_o that_o worthy_a say_n of_o luther_n if_o work_n be_v necessary_a unto_o salvation_n then_o none_o can_v be_v save_v without_o work_n and_o then_o we_o will_v not_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n only_o so_o i_o find_v at_o length_n that_o this_o prime_a article_n of_o our_o religion_n to_o wit_n that_o man_n be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n only_o after_o so_o many_o great_a brag_n be_v not_o in_o scripture_n but_o against_o scripture_n as_o the_o lutheran_n understand_v it_o and_o as_o calvin_n take_v it_o it_o be_v not_o only_o against_o scripture_n but_o also_o against_o his_o own_o principle_n who_o make_v the_o whole_a matter_n to_o end_v in_o philosophical_a term_n for_o the_o most_o part_n neither_o understand_v by_o speaker_n nor_o hearer_n of_o which_o matter_n i_o have_v not_o long_o ago_o a_o notable_a experience_n for_o be_v in_o a_o gentleman_n house_n in_o the_o country_n where_o there_o chance_v to_o be_v a_o minister_n of_o esteem_a learning_n two_o roman_a catholic_n and_o diverse_a protestant_n as_o the_o
real_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n although_o this_o be_v a_o most_o important_a question_n and_o be_v much_o agitate_a by_o the_o curiosity_n of_o carnal_a reason_n yet_o i_o be_v soon_o satisfy_v in_o it_o because_o i_o be_v resolve_v by_o god_n grace_n to_o find_v my_o faith_n upon_o no_o other_o ground_n but_o upon_o the_o divine_a scripture_n as_o they_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n &_o holy_a father_n and_o therefore_o after_o a_o little_a diligence_n and_o some_o conference_n with_o a_o catholic_a on_o this_o matter_n i_o find_v that_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v conform_v to_o the_o clear_a word_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v so_o understand_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o which_o in_o right_a reason_n can_v be_v otherwise_o understand_v and_o that_o god_n have_v approve_v this_o truth_n by_o famous_a miracle_n and_o upon_o the_o other_o part_n i_o find_v that_o the_o presbyerian_a doctrine_n be_v against_o scripture_n father_n counsel_n and_o right_a reason_n that_o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a heresy_n and_o so_o false_a that_o many_o protestant_n do_v eager_o oppose_v it_o and_o last_o that_o such_o great_a confusion_n be_v in_o this_o matter_n among_o the_o first_o apostle_n of_o this_o new_a religion_n that_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n to_o see_v it_o so_o much_o multiply_v among_o their_o child_n all_o which_o point_n i_o will_v brief_o touch_v 1._o the_o catholic_n bring_v express_v scripture_n for_o the_o real_a presence_n to_o wit_n the_o word_n of_o institution_n of_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n relate_v by_o three_o evangelist_n and_o one_o apostle_n where_o our_o saviour_n always_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n and_o to_o know_v that_o he_o mean_v of_o his_o true_a &_o real_a body_n he_o adjoin_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v give_v for_o you_o and_o my_o blood_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o you_o now_o it_o be_v his_o real_a body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o they_o and_o his_o real_a blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o they_o 6._o s._n john_n ch_n 6._o therefore_o it_o be_v his_o real_a body_n &_o real_a blood_n which_o they_o receive_v in_o the_o sacrament_n moreover_o s._n john_n relate_v along_o discourse_n which_o our_o saviour_n have_v to_o the_o jew_n in_o which_o he_o affirm_v that_o he_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o the_o bread_n which_o he_o be_v to_o give_v be_v his_o flesh_n for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n and_o unless_o they_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n they_o shall_v have_v no_o life_n in_o they_o and_o notwitstand_v that_o the_o jew_n murmur_v at_o all_o these_o thing_n say_v how_o can_v this_o man_n give_v we_o his_o flesh_n to_o eat_v and_o this_o be_v a_o hard_a say_n who_o can_v hear_v it_o yet_o our_o saviour_n do_v with_o many_o asseveration_n affirm_v it_o over_z and_o over_o again_o yea_o and_o the_o suffer_v they_o to_o depart_v from_o he_o because_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v this_o divine_a mystery_n now_o christ_n be_v not_o a_o mocker_n or_o deceiver_n of_o man_n to_o speak_v one_o thing_n yea_o and_o to_o aver_v it_o with_o asseveration_n which_o be_v equivalent_a to_o oath_n and_o to_o intend_v the_o contrary_n christ_n be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o usual_a manner_n of_o speech_n therefore_o since_o he_o tell_v the_o apostle_n plain_o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v his_o body_n deliver_v for_o they_o it_o must_v be_v his_o body_n as_o the_o catholic_n believe_v and_o can_v be_v not_o his_o body_n as_o the_o presbyterian_o imagine_v if_o the_o scripture_n be_v judge_n of_o controversy_n than_o this_o controversy_n be_v decide_v for_o that_o judge_n to_o which_o protestant_n make_v ordinary_o their_o appeal_n have_v so_o determine_v the_o cause_n against_o they_o that_o they_o dare_v not_o stand_v to_o the_o clear_a word_n of_o their_o judge_n in_o so_o much_o that_o some_o learned_a protestant_n do_v confess_v that_o the_o scripture_n take_v in_o the_o native_a proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n be_v plain_o for_o the_o catholic_n against_o themselves_o and_o namely_o morton_n when_o he_o speak_v thus_o to_o the_o catholic_n if_o the_o word_n he_o certain_o true_a in_o a_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n 1._o morton_n deinstit_fw-la sacrament_n lib._n 2._o c._n 1._o then_o we_o be_v to_o yield_v to_o you_o the_o whole_a cause_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v enforce_v to_o run_v to_o their_o trope_n &_o figure_n but_o i_o find_v the_o holy_a father_n make_v no_o such_o gloss_n on_o our_o saviour_n clear_a word_n &_o take_v they_o in_o their_o proper_a sense_n s._n augustin_n cite_v these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n this_o be_v my_o body_n 33._o aug._n in_o ps_n 33._o speak_v thus_o a_o man_n may_v be_v carry_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o other_o no_o man_n be_v carry_v in_o his_o own_o hand_n but_o christ_n be_v carry_v in_o his_o own_o hand_n when_o recomend_v his_o body_n he_o himself_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n for_o he_o carry_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o again_o we_o receive_v with_o a_o faithful_a heart_n and_o month_n domini_fw-la idem_fw-la contr_n adversar_n legis_fw-la lib._n 2._o c._n 9_o ambros_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la sacram_fw-la cap._n 4._o chrys_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la sacerdotio_fw-la cypr._n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la domini_fw-la the_o mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_n jesus_n christ_n who_o give_v we_o his_o flesh_n to_o eat_v s._n ambrose_n say_v clear_o before_o consecration_n it_o be_v bread_n but_o when_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n come_v it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n hear_v he_o say_v take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n etc._n etc._n s._n chrysostom_n say_v he_o who_o sit_v above_o with_o the_o father_n in_o that_o same_o instant_n of_o time_n o_o miracle_n o_o the_o bounty_n of_o god_n be_v touch_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o all_o and_o he_o give_v himself_o to_o those_o who_o will_v receive_v and_o embrace_v he_o s._n cyprian_n the_o bread_n which_o our_o lord_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n be_v change_v not_o in_o shape_n but_o in_o nature_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n many_o more_o testimony_n of_o these_o and_o of_o the_o other_o holy_a father_n in_o all_o the_o first_o age_n even_o until_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n 25._o council_n nicen._n apud_fw-la bellar._n lib._n 2_o de_fw-fr euch._n aristi_fw-la c._n 10._o council_n ephes_n apud_fw-la eund_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 25._o may_v be_v see_v collect_v by_o coccius_n and_o gualterus_n so_o that_o i_o find_v both_o the_o scripture_n &_o father_n give_v sentence_n against_o the_o presbyterian_o the_o first_o for_o the_o letter_n and_o the_o other_o for_o the_o sense_n this_o same_o truth_n be_v also_o confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n in_o general_a counsel_n as_o the_o first_o nicen_n council_n who_o word_n bellarmin_n cite_v the_o three_o general_a council_n of_o ephesus_n to_o which_o s._n cyrill_n of_o alexandria_n do_v preside_v by_o which_o synod_n the_o epistle_n of_o s._n cyrill_n to_o nestorius_n where_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v contain_v be_v approve_v as_o it_o be_v thereafter_o by_o the_o four_o and_o five_o general_a counsel_n to_o speak_v nothing_o of_o other_o more_o late_a counsel_n beside_o all_o these_o authority_n it_o be_v also_o make_v evident_a unto_o i_o by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n that_o our_o saviour_n word_n concern_v the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n can_v be_v but_o literal_o understand_v for_o 1._o the_o principal_a article_n or_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o in_o proper_a and_o clear_a word_n but_o this_o by_o all_o man_n confession_n be_v a_o principal_a mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n therefore_o it_o be_v deliver_v in_o clear_a and_o plain_a term_n 2._o that_o can_v be_v ascrybed_n to_o christ_n without_o blasphemy_n which_o no_o reasonable_a or_o prudent_a man_n will_v do_v but_o no_o reasonable_a or_o prudent_a man_n will_v make_v his_o testament_n in_o obscure_a and_o figurative_a word_n for_o that_o be_v the_o high_a way_n to_o deceive_v his_o child_n &_o heir_n and_o put_v they_o at_o variance_n therefore_o since_o christ_n at_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n be_v make_v his_o testament_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o his_o word_n when_o he_o call_v the_o chalice_n 20.22_o luke_n 20.22_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o his_o blood_n by_o which_o he_o leave_v unto_o his_o child_n the_o most_o precious_a legacy_n of_o his_o body_n for_o their_o comfort_n &_o nourishment_n he_o speak_v proper_o &_o clear_o and_o not_o figurative_o 3._o chr●st_v promise_v the_o jew_n
how_o much_o less_o can_v they_o as_o they_o be_v now_o be_v in_o many_o place_n hard_a and_o obscure_a these_o protestant_n who_o reject_v all_o but_o scripture_n will_v make_v christ_n to_o have_v be_v the_o most_o imprudent_a lawgiver_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o this_o world_n to_o have_v leave_v we_o only_o a_o write_a law_n or_o a_o book_n in_o many_o thing_n very_o obscure_a and_o expose_v it_o to_o every_o man_n to_o scance_v upon_o without_o assign_v a_o interpreter_n who_o can_v give_v we_o full_a assurance_n of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o that_o way_n will_v never_o bring_v man_n to_o the_o sure_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n and_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o his_o law_n but_o will_v make_v all_o thing_n uncertain_a and_o bring_v in_o a_o confusion_n more_o worthy_a of_o babel_n then_o of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n but_o his_o divine_a wisdom_n have_v otherwise_o provyde_v we_o have_v see_v then_o say_v the_o catholic_a that_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o christian_n in_o every_o generation_n be_v the_o only_a sure_a &_o infallible_a way_n now_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o it_o be_v the_o most_o easy_a &_o universal_a way_n to_o attayn_v unto_o the_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o what_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n teach_v for_o what_o be_v more_o easy_a then_o to_o hear_v a_o continue_a testimony_n of_o pastor_n &_o people_n who_o constant_o depose_v that_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o their_o forefather_n what_o can_v be_v more_o easy_a then_o to_o open_v our_o eye_n and_o see_v the_o practice_n of_o all_o christian_n no_o man_n of_o sense_n will_v deny_v if_o the_o true_a doctrine_n can_v be_v sure_o know_v hereby_o but_o it_o be_v a_o much_o mor_fw-fr easy_a way_n then_o by_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v so_o hard_a and_o obscure_a or_o by_o any_o write_a word_n although_o never_o so_o clear_a and_o it_o be_v also_o evident_a that_o it_o be_v more_o universal_a for_o the_o scripture_n be_v only_o for_o those_o who_o can_v read_v and_o understand_v they_o but_o this_o serve_v for_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n learned_a or_o unlearned_a these_o who_o can_v read_v or_o can_v and_o even_o for_o the_o mean_a capacity_n this_o be_v certain_o the_o meaning_n of_o god_n when_o he_o promise_v under_o the_o gospel_n a_o direct_a way_n so_o that_o fool_n can_v err_v by_o it_o therefore_o this_o be_v so_o sure_a 35.8_o esay_n 35.8_o so_o easy_a so_o universal_a a_o way_n the_o wisdom_n &_o goodness_n of_o god_n who_o dispose_v all_o thing_n wise_o and_o sweet_o have_v make_v use_n of_o it_o this_o may_v be_v yet_o further_o illustrate_v and_o confirm_v by_o the_o manner_n how_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v plant_v first_o the_o apostle_n stay_v long_o in_o one_o place_n that_o they_o may_v diligent_o inculcate_v the_o christian_a doctrine_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v to_o the_o ephesian_n 27.31_o act_n 20_o 27.31_o i_o have_v not_o spare_v to_o declare_v unto_o you_o all_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n for_o three_o year_n night_n &_o day_n i_o cease_v not_o with_o tear_n to_o warn_v every_o one_o etc._n etc._n second_o the_o apostle_n earnest_o exhort_v their_o disciple_n to_o keep_v careful_o what_o they_o have_v receive_v 1.9_o 2._o timoth_n 2.2_o galat._n 1.9_o to_o entrust_v it_o unto_o faithful_a witness_n and_o not_o to_o admit_v any_o doctrine_n contrary_a to_o that_o which_o they_o have_v receive_v not_o although_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v preach_v otherwise_o three_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v not_o only_o sensible_o teach_v to_o the_o ear_n but_o they_o be_v render_v visible_a to_o the_o sight_n by_o the_o ●ractise_n &_o devotion_n of_o the_o christian_a people_n four_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v plant_v at_o once_o in_o many_o diverse_a nation_n therefore_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o the_o primitive_a christian_n to_o know_v what_o be_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v hear_v so_o often_o beat_v into_o their_o ear_n which_o they_o see_v practise_v with_o their_o eye_n and_o which_o be_v profess_v through_o out_o the_o whole_a word_n and_o great_a reason_n have_v they_o not_o to_o receive_v any_o doctrine_n contrary_a to_o it_o it_o be_v also_o easy_a for_o they_o to_o discern_v &_o hold_v out_o all_o new_a &_o false_a doctrine_n for_o although_o some_o will_v pretend_v never_o so_o much_o the_o scripture_n against_o the_o public_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o the_o ancient_a christian_n know_v certain_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v clear_o deliver_v by_o lively_a voice_n and_o public_o establish_v in_o the_o church_n they_o understand_v the_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o clear_a rule_n of_o faith_n leave_v by_o the_o apostle_n they_o do_v not_o upon_o pretext_n of_o contrariety_n between_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n &_o the_o scripture_n abandon_v the_o apostle_n clear_a lively_a doctrine_n universal_o establish_v and_o follow_v a_o new_a gloss_n of_o their_o writing_n contrary_a to_o it_o which_o have_v be_v indeed_o gross_a folly_n and_o direct_o against_o the_o apostle_n command_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o have_v be_v show_v and_o as_o this_o be_v a_o easy_a way_n in_o the_o first_o age_n to_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o to_o discern_v error_n so_o it_o have_v be_v in_o the_o succeed_a age_n for_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n ought_v to_o be_v immovable_a as_o the_o faith_n itself_o be_v god_n himself_o promise_v the_o continuance_n of_o this_o easy_a way_n when_o he_o say_v by_o esay_n 59.21_o esay_n 59.21_o my_o spirit_n which_o be_v in_o thou_o and_o my_o word_n which_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n for_o ever_o and_o again_o upon_o thy_o wall_n o_o jerusalem_n 62.6_o esay_n 62.6_o i_o have_v appoint_v watchman_n all_o the_o day_n &_o all_o the_o night_n etc._n etc._n the_o scripture_n direct_v we_o to_o this_o way_n 32.7_o deuter._n 32.7_o remember_v the_o day_n of_o old_a say_v moses_n consider_v every_o generation_n ask_v thy_o father_n and_o he_o will_v show_v thou_o thy_o elder_n &_o they_o will_v tell_v thou_o god_n himself_o say_v in_o jeremy_n 6.16_o jeremie_n 6.16_o stand_v you_o in_o the_o way_n and_o see_v and_o ask_v for_o the_o old_a path_n where_o be_v the_o good_a way_n and_o walk_v therein_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v rest_n to_o your_o soul_n because_o many_o leave_v this_o old_a &_o good_a way_n we_o see_v they_o change_v many_o way_n and_o can_v find_v no_o rest_n and_o never_o will_v until_o they_o return_v again_o to_o the_o old_a &_o good_a way_n which_o they_o foolish_o abandon_v christ_n direct_v we_o to_o this_o way_n 18.17_o math._n 18.17_o when_o he_o say_v tell_v the_o church_n and_o who_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o etc._n etc._n the_o holy_a father_n follow_v this_o way_n s._n augustin_n show_v that_o this_o be_v the_o way_n to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o doubt_n to_o attayn_v unto_o the_o truth_n &_o to_o be_v at_o rest_n which_o he_o know_v by_o his_o own_o experience_n 8._o aug._n de_fw-fr utilitate_fw-la cred_a cap._n 8._o if_o thou_o seem_v to_o thyself_o say_v he_o to_o have_v be_v already_o sufficient_o toss_v and_o will_v make_v a_o end_n of_o these_o labour_n &_o pain_n follow_v the_o way_n of_o the_o catholic_a discipline_n which_o have_v proceed_v from_o christ_n by_o his_o apostle_n even_o unto_o we_o and_o from_o hence_o shall_v descend_v and_o be_v convey_v unto_o posterity_n tertullian_n affirm_v there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n to_o know_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n 21._o tertull._n de_fw-fr praescrip_n c._n 21._o what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v say_v he_o i_o will_v prescribe_v ought_v not_o otherwise_o to_o be_v prove_v then_o by_o these_o church_n which_o the_o apostle_n found_v and_o that_o we_o must_v begin_v with_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n wherein_o we_o live_v to_o ascend_v by_o every_o generation_n unto_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o so_o to_o the_o very_a mouth_n of_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n the_o same_o tertullian_n show_v who_o make_v this_o ladder_n of_o belief_n 21._o tert._n de_fw-fr praes_fw-la c._n 21._o what_o i_o believe_v i_o receive_v from_o the_o present_a church_n the_o present_a church_n from_o the_o primitive_a the_o primitive_a from_o the_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n from_o christ_n etc._n etc._n according_a to_o this_o tradition_n the_o holy_a father_n do_v understand_v the_o scripture_n 1._o vincent_n lyr._n cont_n heres_fw-la c._n 1._o s._n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n show_v the_o necessity_n of_o this_o rule_n to_o avoid_v the_o turn_n and_o wind_n of_o diverse_a error_n where_o he_o cite_v and_o commend_v the_o follow_a word_n of_o
pretend_v universality_n when_o you_o say_v that_o your_o faith_n be_v believe_v receive_v and_o defend_v by_o many_o notable_a kirk_n and_o realm_n but_o chief_o by_o the_o kirk_n of_o scotland_n next_o you_o lie_v claim_v to_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o antiquity_n when_o you_o say_v that_o it_o have_v be_v of_o a_o long_a time_n open_o profess_v such_o be_v the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n that_o enemy_n to_o it_o be_v sometime_o enforce_v to_o make_v use_n or_o rather_o a_o show_n of_o it_o but_o to_o speak_v first_o of_o the_o universality_n of_o your_o faith_n where_o be_v all_o these_o many_o notable_a realm_n and_o kirk_n which_o you_o affirm_v do_v profess_v your_o religion_n in_o europe_n no_o such_o kingdom_n can_v be_v find_v for_o swedland_n &_o denmark_n be_v know_v to_o be_v lutherian_o who_o have_v neither_o unity_n of_o faith_n with_o you_o nor_o communion_n in_o sacrament_n and_o abhor_v the_o very_a name_n of_o calvin_n &_o of_o all_o sacramentary_n the_o realm_n &_o late_a church_n of_o england_n maintain_v the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n abhor_v very_o much_o the_o anarchy_n of_o your_o presbytery_n and_o now_o since_o england_n become_v a_o commonwealth_n it_o hate_v nothing_o more_o than_o the_o soule-tyranny_n as_o it_o be_v common_o call_v there_o of_o your_o presbytery_n the_o other_o famous_a kingdom_n of_o europe_n be_v either_o total_o or_o for_o the_o much_o great_a part_n roman_a catholic_n so_o that_o the_o many_o notable_a realm_n of_o your_o religion_n be_v as_o yet_o invisible_a unless_o you_o will_v count_v all_o those_o to_o be_v of_o your_o religion_n who_o be_v not_o papist_n or_o who_o go_v under_o the_o general_a name_n of_o protestant_n but_o that_o can_v be_v do_v for_o the_o universality_n of_o a_o church_n require_v unity_n in_o faith_n &_o communion_n in_o sacrament_n which_o you_o evident_o want_v with_o a_o great_a part_n of_o protestant_a church_n and_o therefore_o know_v that_o you_o want_v this_o unity_n you_o wise_o pretend_v that_o this_o faith_n which_o you_o so_o much_o praise_n be_v chief_o profess_v by_o the_o kirk_n of_o scotland_n for_o every_o one_o of_o you_o pretend_v to_o be_v chief_a and_o will_v not_o yield_v to_o another_o then_o you_o come_v as_o little_a speed_n of_o your_o antiquity_n for_o all_o the_o long_a time_n that_o your_o faith_n be_v profess_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o your_o reformation_n to_o the_o first_o make_v of_o the_o covenant_n be_v but_o about_o 20._o year_n and_o as_o yet_o to_o this_o day_n it_o have_v not_o past_o the_o bound_n of_o one_o age._n if_o you_o have_v the_o universality_n &_o antiquity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n how_o will_v you_o glory_v when_o you_o make_v such_o a_o stir_n with_o your_o fewness_n and_o novelty_n for_o your_o one_o kingdom_n and_o your_o one_o hundred_o year_n in_o which_o your_o religion_n have_v be_v profess_v we_o can_v show_v you_o the_o same_o kingdom_n profess_v the_o catholic_a religion_n above_o 14._o hundred_o year_n and_o all_o the_o famous_a christian_a kingdom_n and_o country_n of_o the_o world_n make_v the_o same_o profession_n even_o to_o the_o first_o time_n of_o their_o conversion_n from_o infidelity_n to_o christianity_n and_o for_o your_o one_o king_n mention_v in_o your_o covenant_n which_o he_o take_v in_o his_o young_a year_n disprove_a it_o when_o he_o become_v more_o ripe_a as_o appear_v in_o the_o conference_n at_o hampton-court_n we_o can_v show_v you_o 80._o king_n of_o the_o same_o nation_n diverse_a of_o which_o be_v glorious_a saint_n in_o heaven_n who_o live_v and_o dye_v in_o the_o catholic_a profession_n to_o who_o we_o may_v add_v all_o the_o famous_a christian_a king_n &_o emperor_n that_o have_v be_v in_o the_o world_n but_o albeit_o you_o be_v more_o spread_v than_o you_o be_v you_o will_v find_v no_o great_a advantage_n by_o it_o s._n augustin_n compare_v you_o with_o good_a reason_n to_o smoke_n 36._o aug._n serm_n 2._o in_o psal_n 36._o which_o do_v vanish_v so_o much_o the_o soon_o by_o how_o much_o it_o be_v great_a &_o more_o dilate_a abroad_o this_o we_o have_v see_v verify_v in_o our_o time_n for_o the_o late_a church_n of_o england_n intend_v to_o dilate_v herself_o in_o scotland_n do_v short_o thereafter_o vanish_v like_o smoke_n in_o england_n again_o the_o scottish_a presbytery_n endeavour_v with_o great_a zeal_n to_o propagate_v itself_o in_o england_n lose_v soon_o much_o of_o its_o fiery_a force_n in_o scotland_n second_o antiquity_n of_o your_o religion_n will_v tend_v no_o less_o to_o your_o ruin_n for_o as_o s._n hierom_n have_v observe_v all_o heresy_n please_v only_a man_n for_o a_o time_n and_o when_o they_o grow_v old_a they_o wear_v out_o of_o request_n as_o may_v be_v know_v by_o the_o many_o alteration_n of_o religion_n that_o have_v happen_v in_o scotland_n but_o especial_o in_o england_n since_o their_o public_a fall_n from_o the_o catholic_a religion_n then_o for_o act_n of_o parliament_n whereby_o you_o say_v your_o faith_n be_v confirm_v they_o can_v be_v very_o many_o see_v the_o religion_n be_v so_o late_o neither_o can_v they_o give_v great_a confirmation_n to_o a_o religion_n because_o they_o be_v very_o changeable_a we_o see_v one_o protestant_a parliament_n have_v ransact_v the_o king_n supremacy_n which_o many_o protestant_a parliament_n have_v enact_v and_o that_o which_o be_v before_o declare_v heresy_n if_o not_o treason_n to_o deny_v be_v now_o judge_v both_o great_a folly_n and_o treason_n to_o affirm_v the_o true_a religion_n be_v warrant_v by_o a_o high_a authority_n then_o by_o earthly_a court_n but_o the_o protestant_a religion_n be_v make_v and_o unmake_v by_o protestant_a parliament_n the_o last_o point_n here_o propose_v contain_v three_o untruth_n link_v together_o as_o where_o you_o say_v that_o you_o all_o willing_o agree_v in_o all_o point_n all_o the_o horologe_n of_o the_o world_n will_v soon_o agree_v than_o your_o will_n when_o coercive_a power_n be_v now_o take_v out_o of_o your_o hand_n you_o see_v how_o many_o do_v willing_o &_o free_o disagree_v from_o you_o then_o you_o call_v all_o the_o point_n of_o your_o faith_n god_n undoubted_a truth_n which_o they_o can_v be_v beside_o other_o reason_n because_o many_o protestant_n doubt_v of_o diverse_a of_o they_o yea_o they_o think_v they_o undoubted_a falsehood_n and_o beside_o yourselves_o be_v often_o change_v they_o which_o show_v that_o many_o article_n of_o your_o faith_n be_v doubtsome_a and_o your_o faith_n of_o they_o be_v nothing_o but_o mere_a opinion_n last_o it_o be_v most_o false_a that_o all_o your_o faith_n be_v ground_v only_o upon_o the_o write_a word_n because_o you_o believe_v some_o thing_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o change_n of_o the_o sabbath_n into_o sunday_n the_o baptise_v of_o infant_n and_o which_o be_v more_o you_o believe_v some_o point_n against_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n as_o your_o article_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o to_o speak_v nothing_o of_o diverse_a other_o and_o moreover_o you_o lay_v down_o a_o false_a ground_n when_o you_o profess_v to_o believe_v nothing_o 2.15_o 2._o thes_n 2.15_o but_o what_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n whereas_o they_o express_o bid_v you_o hold_v fast_o the_o tradition_n thus_o we_o have_v see_v all_o your_o pretence_n as_o about_o the_o word_n &_o spirit_n of_o god_n the_o universality_n &_o antiquity_n of_o your_o faith_n by_o which_o you_o will_v make_v it_o more_o commendable_a to_o be_v false_a &_o groundless_a now_o we_o shall_v see_v how_o bitter_o you_o renounce_v &_o accurse_v the_o catholic_a faith_n section_n iv_o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n where_o it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o antichrist_n nor_o a_o usurper_n as_o the_o covenanter_n do_v calumniate_v after_o the_o former_a preface_n follow_v these_o word_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o therefore_o we_o abhor_v and_o detest_v all_o contrary_a religion_n &_o doctrine_n but_o chief_o all_o kind_n of_o papistry_n in_o general_a and_o particular_a head_n even_o as_o they_o be_v now_o damn_v &_o confute_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o kirk_n of_o scotland_n but_o in_o special_a we_o detest_v and_o refuse_v the_o usurp_v authority_n of_o the_o roman_a anti_n christ_n upon_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o church_n the_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o conscience_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n here_o you_o ingenuous_o confess_v yourselves_o to_o have_v one_o quality_n which_o all_o heretic_n have_v ever_o have_v to_o hate_v and_o detest_v most_o the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o your_o practice_n show_v this_o your_o confession_n to_o be_v true_a for_o albeit_o any_o person_n become_v a_o socinian_n anabaptist_n or_o atheist_n you_o take_v no_o great_a notice_n of_o he_o but_o if_o you_o hear_v of_o any_o that_o be_v become_v a_o papist_n he_o be_v sure_a to_o
not_o usurp_v for_o he_o who_o be_v a_o just_a possessor_n be_v no_o usurper_n yea_o he_o have_v be_v so_o far_o from_o usurp_v over_o the_o scripture_n the_o church_n etc._n etc._n that_o he_o have_v chief_o preserve_v they_o from_o the_o usurpation_n and_o corruption_n of_o heretic_n and_o first_o it_o be_v show_v that_o he_o do_v not_o usurp_v over_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o covenanter_n do_v calumniate_v for_o he_o neither_o usurp_v over_o the_o letter_n nor_o the_o sense_n of_o they_o not_o the_o first_o for_o both_o the_o pope_n &_o whole_a catholic_a church_n profess_v that_o they_o only_o declare_v that_o to_o be_v scripture_n which_o they_o receive_v for_o such_o from_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o it_o be_v by_o their_o care_n &_o diligence_n that_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v descend_v pure_a &_o free_a from_o corruption_n unto_o our_o hand_n whereas_o it_o may_v have_v be_v altogether_o corrupt_v or_o total_o perish_v for_o protestant_n neither_o do_v the_o pope_n or_o catholic_a church_n usurp_v over_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o they_o preserve_v that_o sense_n which_o be_v conform_v to_o the_o vanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n &_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n second_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o usurp_v over_o the_o church_n because_o the_o care_n and_o charge_n of_o it_o be_v commit_v by_o christ_n to_o s._n peter_n and_o to_o his_o successor_n as_o we_o have_v see_v and_o he_o preserve_v the_o church_n from_o the_o usurpation_n of_o heretic_n three_o he_o do_v not_o usurp_v over_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n the_o experience_n of_o many_o age_n in_o all_o christian_n kingdom_n &_o commonwealth_n be_v more_o than_o sufficient_a to_o make_v this_o good_a &_o to_o manifest_v the_o impudent_a falsehood_n of_o the_o presbyterian_a calumny_n to_o the_o contrary_n four_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o usurp_v over_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n but_o as_o chief_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v lawful_a authority_n to_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n which_o bound_v in_o conscience_n as_o also_o all_o the_o just_a law_n of_o king_n &_o other_o civil_a magistrate_n do_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o which_o their_o subject_n ought_v to_o obey_v according_a to_o that_o of_o s._n paul_n be_v subject_a not_o only_o for_o wrath_n but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n 13.5_o rom._n 13.5_o and_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n of_o protestant_n which_o affirm_v that_o neither_o the_o law_n of_o church_n king_n or_o other_o magistrate_n do_v bind_v in_o conscience_n be_v much_o detest_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o open_v a_o broad_a way_n to_o all_o disobedience_n but_o now_o it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o show_v how_o you_o be_v destitute_a of_o all_o lawful_a authority_n and_o deep_o guilty_a of_o the_o same_o usurpation_n which_o you_o false_o impose_v on_o other_o first_o all_o heretic_n who_o go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v no_o lawful_a call_n or_o authority_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v pastor_n and_o impose_v their_o new_a doctrine_n &_o law_n upon_o the_o church_n be_v true_o usurper_n and_o be_v call_v thief_n by_o our_o saviour_n who_o enter_v not_o by_o the_o door_n but_o climb_v up_o another_o way_n so_o s._n optatus_n speak_v to_o the_o donatist_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v parmen_fw-la opt._n lib._n 2._o cont_n parmen_fw-la say_v he_o that_o you_o who_o be_v fight_v against_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n by_o your_o presumption_n and_o sacrilegious_a boldness_n contend_v to_o usurp_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o yourselves_o thus_o luther_n &_o calvin_n the_o two_o chief_a apostle_n of_o protestant_n be_v usurper_n who_o be_v private_a man_n without_o any_o lawful_a call_n or_o authority_n will_v bring_v in_o new_a doctrine_n and_o prescribe_v law_n to_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n and_o in_o this_o the_o covenant_a minister_n do_v imitate_v they_o second_o they_o usurp_v in_o particular_a over_o both_o the_o letter_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o luther_n add_v the_o word_n only_o to_o they_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n and_o take_v the_o whole_a epistle_n of_o s._n james_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n from_o they_o calvin_n also_o by_o his_o private_a spirit_n make_v up_o a_o new_a canon_n not_o know_v before_o his_o time_n expunge_v many_o book_n ancient_o receive_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n which_o new_a rule_n the_o covenanter_n follow_v then_o for_o the_o sense_n they_o transgress_v the_o bound_n set_v by_o the_o father_n reject_v the_o ancient_a sense_n preserve_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o invent_v new_a sense_n of_o their_o own_o imagination_n which_o they_o enforce_v upon_o other_o as_o divine_a truth_n in_o this_o also_o you_o covenant_a minister_n have_v follow_v close_o their_o footstep_n for_o you_o have_v be_v no_o less_o fertile_a in_o invent_v such_o new_a sense_n then_o active_a in_o enforce_v they_o upon_o other_o three_o your_o pretend_a reformer_n be_v usurper_n over_o the_o church_n who_o have_v no_o lawful_a call_n nor_o authority_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v reformer_n of_o the_o church_n who_o will_v impose_v their_o own_o fancy_n as_o law_n &_o divine_a oracle_n on_o the_o church_n who_o insolent_o will_v take_v upon_o they_o to_o judge_v and_o condemn_v the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n and_o who_o under_o pretext_n of_o reformation_n have_v destroy_v almost_o all_o that_o be_v sacred_a in_o the_o church_n barbarous_o destroy_v many_o excellent_a church_n and_o sacrilegious_o usurp_v and_o plunder_v the_o riches_n &_o ornament_n of_o they_o this_o luther_n and_o calvin_n do_v at_o the_o beginning_n and_o this_o you_o have_v complete_v in_o a_o great_a measure_n above_o all_o their_o progeny_n four_o you_o be_v also_o very_o guilty_a of_o usurpation_n over_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n the_o late_a rise_n of_o your_o religion_n can_v furnish_v we_o old_a history_n but_o for_o your_o short_a time_n you_o have_v be_v pretty_a busy_a and_o afford_v we_o a_o good_a store_n for_o in_o our_o country_n there_o have_v be_v only_o 3._o or_o 4._o prince_n since_o your_o religion_n begin_v and_o none_o of_o they_o have_v be_v exempt_a from_o your_o usurpation_n first_o the_o queen_n regent_z be_v depose_v by_o you_o from_o her_o regency_n and_o die_v short_o thereafter_o for_o grief_n second_o how_o you_o use_v her_o daughter_n queen_n mary_n stewart_n it_o be_v notorious_o know_v to_o the_o world_n for_o after_o you_o have_v imprison_v she_o &_o enforce_v she_o to_o renounce_v her_o crown_n you_o never_o desist_v till_o by_o persecute_v of_o she_o unto_o death_n you_o make_v she_o purchase_v a_o more_o glorious_a crown_n and_o yet_o by_o your_o calumny_n after_o her_o death_n augment_v her_o glory_n in_o heaven_n three_o doron_n basili_n con_fw-mi doron_n how_o you_o usurp_v over_o king_n james_n her_o son_n he_o himself_o have_v register_v to_o your_o no_o small_a infamy_n and_o albeit_o you_o do_v not_o prevail_v against_o he_o yet_o you_o have_v pay_v home_o that_o deficiency_n with_o usury_n to_o his_o son_n the_o late_a king_n charles_n by_o this_o may_v be_v see_v whither_o the_o pope_n or_o you_o do_v usurp_v more_o over_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n last_o you_o have_v be_v great_a usurper_n over_o man_n conscience_n as_o may_v be_v know_v to_o pass_v by_o all_o other_o instance_n by_o your_o furious_a urge_v this_o same_o covenant_n upon_o many_o protestant_n against_o their_o conscience_n for_o which_o they_o give_v you_o the_o title_n of_o soule-tyrant_n by_o all_o which_o may_v be_v see_v that_o you_o be_v very_o guilty_a of_o the_o same_o usurpation_n which_o you_o false_o object_n to_o other_o section_n v._o that_o the_o law_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v not_o tyrannous_a nor_o her_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o scripture_n and_o office_n of_o christ_n erroneous_a after_o you_o have_v renounce_v the_o pope_n authority_n as_o unlawful_a than_o you_o renounce_v his_o law_n as_o tyrannous_a and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n concern_v the_o scripture_n &_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n as_o erroneous_a for_o thus_o you_o speak_v in_o your_o covenant_n we_o detest_v all_o his_o tyrannous_a law_n make_v upon_o indifferent_a thing_n against_o our_o christian_a liberty_n his_o erroneous_a doctrine_n against_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o write_a word_n the_o perfection_n of_o the_o law_n the_o office_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o bless_a evangel_n if_o you_o renounce_v all_o law_n make_v upon_o indifferent_a thing_n pretend_v that_o they_o be_v against_o your_o christian_a liberty_n than_o you_o renounce_v the_o most_o part_n of_o all_o law_n both_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a which_o be_v ordinary_o upon_o such_o matter_n and_o in_o a_o certain_a manner_n restrain_v liberty_n then_o you_o may_v renounce_v also_o the_o law_n of_o the_o apostle_n 15._o act_n 15._o for_o
the_o bond_n but_o also_o the_o sacrament_n of_o marriage_n be_v commend_v by_o which_o few_o testimony_n these_o 5._o sacrament_n which_o you_o reject_v be_v as_o clear_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n as_o these_o two_o which_o you_o admit_v yea_o although_o they_o have_v not_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o they_o be_v all_o with_o reverence_n to_o be_v receive_v see_v they_o be_v demonstrate_v by_o divine_a tradition_n which_o be_v of_o no_o less_o infallible_a authority_n than_o the_o scripture_n itself_o as_o have_v be_v prove_v above_o and_o this_o tradition_n be_v evident_a both_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o by_o the_o constant_a belief_n &_o practice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o have_v use_v these_o sacrament_n in_o all_o age_n according_a to_o the_o end_n for_o which_o they_o be_v institute_v and_o therefore_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o flow_v from_o such_o pure_a fountain_n be_v pure_a &_o true_a &_o not_o corrupt_v as_o you_o do_v calumniate_v whereas_o indeed_o your_o doctrine_n and_o that_o of_o your_o first_o reformer_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v not_o only_o full_a of_o corruption_n but_o also_o of_o confusion_n for_o luther_n follower_n admit_v three_o sacrament_n to_o wit_n 8._o ap._n becan_n in_o man._n lib._n 1._o c._n 8._o baptism_n eucharist_n &_o penance_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o their_o catechism_n zuinglius_fw-la receive_v also_o three_o but_o not_o all_o the_o same_o for_o in_o place_n of_o penance_n he_o put_v matrimony_n and_o calvin_n reckon_v also_o three_o for_o to_o baptism_n &_o the_o supper_n 32._o cal._n lib._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 19_o par_fw-fr 32._o he_o add_v order_n so_o full_a of_o confusion_n even_o at_o the_o beginning_n be_v these_o bvilder_n of_o babylon_n follow_v neither_o scripture_n nor_o father_n but_o their_o own_o fancy_n wherein_o you_o be_v not_o behind_o with_o they_o swarve_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o your_o master_n calvin_n and_o according_a to_o your_o own_o imagination_n admit_v only_o 2._o sacrament_n which_o two_o also_o in_o effect_n you_o destroy_v by_o rob_v they_o of_o all_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n as_o have_v be_v show_v above_o chap._n 21._o in_o fine_a you_o accuse_v next_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o corruption_n concern_v the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a against_o your_o accusation_n that_o these_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o you_o most_o blame_v as_o private_a baptism_n private_a communion_n etc._n etc._n be_v know_v to_o have_v be_v observe_v by_o the_o holy_a primitive_a church_n be_v in_o themselves_o laudable_a and_o tend_v much_o to_o the_o devotion_n &_o comfort_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o be_v also_o approve_v by_o diverse_a learned_a &_o moderate_a protestant_n whereas_o your_o doctrine_n &_o practice_n make_v your_o sacrament_n altogether_o graceless_a and_o almost_o useless_a and_o comfortless_a for_o which_o you_o be_v blame_v by_o diverse_a protestant_n moreover_o you_o be_v enemy_n also_o to_o the_o very_a ceremony_n with_o which_o the_o sacrament_n be_v administrate_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o you_o to_o have_v take_v away_o the_o fruit_n of_o grace_n from_o these_o heavenly_a tree_n plant_v by_o god_n in_o the_o garden_n of_o his_o church_n as_o in_o a_o heavenly_a paradise_n unless_o you_o pull_v away_o also_o the_o ceremony_n which_o serve_v as_o leaf_n and_o ornament_n to_o they_o you_o detest_v all_o ceremony_n not_o contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o which_o you_o lay_v down_o a_o most_o false_a &_o deceitful_a principle_n as_o if_o no_o ceremony_n be_v to_o be_v use_v which_o be_v not_o express_o there_o for_o first_o the_o scripture_n contain_v not_o express_o all_o doctrine_n but_o refer_v we_o to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o tradition_n as_o we_o have_v see_v above_o how_o much_o less_o than_o do_v it_o contain_v all_o ceremony_n second_o as_o our_o saviour_n when_o he_o do_v institute_v the_o sacrament_n do_v not_o prescribe_v the_o particular_a form_n by_o which_o they_o shall_v be_v celebrate_v but_o leave_v that_o to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o his_o apostle_n so_o his_o apostle_n do_v not_o set_v down_o that_o manner_n in_o writing_n s._n augustin_n express_o affirm_v the_o first_o part_n januar._n aug._n ep_v 118._o ad_fw-la januar._n say_v christ_n do_v not_o command_v in_o what_o order_n thereafter_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v take_v that_o he_o may_v leave_v that_o place_n to_o the_o apostle_n by_o who_o his_o be_v to_o order_v his_o church_n the_o second_o part_n be_v also_o evident_a for_o we_o never_o read_v where_o s._n paul_n who_o write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n concern_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n say_v ult._n 1._o cor._n 11._o ver_fw-la ult._n the_o rest_n i_o will_v dispose_v when_o i_o come_v do_v express_v that_o manner_n or_o order_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o other_o apostle_n three_o some_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n use_v by_o christ_n himself_o &_o record_v in_o scripture_n be_v change_v by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n according_a to_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o great_a honour_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n and_o have_v be_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n observe_v throughout_o the_o whole_a church_n without_o scripture_n 6._o aug._n ep_v 118._o c._n 6._o this_o s._n augustin_n do_v testify_v neither_o say_v he_o because_o christ_n give_v the_o sacrament_n after_o meat_n ought_v we_o have_v dine_v or_o sup_v assemble_v to_o receive_v that_o sacrament_n or_o as_o these_o who_o the_o apostle_n reprove_v and_o correct_v mingle_v it_o with_o their_o table_n etc._n etc._n for_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o so_o great_a a_o sacrament_n our_o lord_n body_n before_o all_o other_o meat_n shall_v first_o enter_v into_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o therefore_o this_o custom_n be_v observe_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n four_o the_o church_n can_v institute_v ceremony_n for_o great_a decency_n and_o order_n and_o for_o the_o more_o honour_n of_o god_n for_o if_o jacob_n a_o private_a man_n use_v a_o new_a ceremony_n by_o erect_v a_o stone_n by_o pour_v oil_n upon_o it_o and_o give_v it_o the_o title_n of_o bethel_n 28._o genes_n 28._o if_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n make_v a_o new_a feast_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o mardocheus_n 9_o ester_n 9_o why_o not_o also_o shall_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v the_o same_o authority_n if_o such_o be_v the_o power_n of_o a_o private_a man_n and_o of_o the_o handmaid_n how_o much_o more_o ought_v the_o power_n be_v of_o the_o freewoman_n the_o holy_a church_n the_o immaculate_a spouse_n of_o jesus-christ_n or_o what_o can_v be_v more_o ridiculous_a and_o profane_a then_o to_o grant_v that_o power_n to_o these_o and_o deny_v it_o to_o this_o or_o to_o think_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o all_o truth_n according_a to_o christ_n promise_n shall_v not_o have_v so_o much_o wisdom_n as_o to_o ordain_v aright_o some_o few_o ceremony_n therefore_o your_o former_a principle_n be_v very_o false_a for_o many_o reason_n yea_o it_o be_v so_o false_a that_o yourselves_o do_v not_o observe_v it_o for_o where_o have_v you_o scripture_n for_o the_o godfather_n &_o godmothers_n which_o you_o require_v at_o baptism_n where_o have_v you_o scripture_n for_o take_v your_o communion_n fast_v from_o the_o hand_n of_o one_o another_o &_o not_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o your_o minister_n and_o for_o many_o such_o rite_n &_o custom_n beside_o your_o stool_n of_o repentance_n when_o do_v your_o minister_n observe_v that_o ceremony_n of_o wash_v the_o foot_n of_o other_o which_o be_v use_v by_o christ_n 13.5_o john_n 13.5_o before_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n when_o do_v either_o they_o or_o their_o elder_n anoint_v the_o sick_a according_a to_o s._n james_n precept_n whereby_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o you_o observe_v some_o rite_n which_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o other_o you_o neglect_v which_o be_v there_o particular_o recommend_v as_o than_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n may_v use_v ceremony_n which_o be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n so_o these_o ceremony_n which_o she_o observe_v be_v most_o commendable_a because_o they_o be_v most_o ancient_a and_o be_v use_v in_o the_o primitive_a time_n as_o coccius_n show_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n they_o be_v most_o observable_a because_o they_o be_v institute_v by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o have_v both_o authority_n and_o wisdom_n to_o institute_v those_o which_o be_v most_o convenient_a and_o last_o they_o have_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o long_a
little_a the_o model_n and_o method_n of_o it_o in_o the_o first_o place_n be_v set_v down_o the_o occasion_n of_o that_o honourable_a new_a convert_v doubt_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n such_o as_o be_v the_o minister_n inconstancy_n in_o doctrine_n &_o discipline_n their_o great_a dissension_n and_o division_n their_o tyrannize_a over_o man_n conscience_n their_o contradict_v their_o own_o principle_n etc._n etc._n in_o which_o matter_n some_o late_a history_n or_o passage_n be_v interlace_v without_o express_v the_o name_n of_o person_n therein_o concern_v because_o that_o be_v not_o necessary_a since_o the_o thing_n here_o touch_v be_v public_a late_a &_o fresh_a in_o all_o man_n knowledge_n and_o memory_n within_o the_o country_n and_o the_o person_n also_o well_o enough_o know_v neither_o be_v it_o the_o disgrace_v of_o any_o man_n person_n 11._o hier._n apolog._n 3._o cont_n ruffin_n c._n 11._o which_o s._n hierom_n call_v the_o machine_n of_o heretic_n but_o the_o correction_n of_o their_o error_n which_o be_v here_o intend_a after_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o doubt_n be_v show_v in_o some_o few_o chapter_n then_o follow_v the_o trial_n of_o the_o last_o pretend_v presbyterian_a reformation_n in_o the_o principal_a point_n thereof_o as_o its_o condemn_v of_o episcopacy_n the_o abolish_n the_o hymn_n of_o glory_n to_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n the_o deny_v the_o apostolical_a authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n neglect_v to_o say_v our_o lord_n prayer_n etc._n etc._n in_o all_o which_o point_n the_o presbyterian_o be_v find_v to_o go_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o former_a doctrine_n &_o practice_n of_o many_o among_o themselves_o against_o their_o first_o reformer_n and_o many_o learned_a protestant_n so_o that_o this_o last_o pretend_a reformation_n be_v show_v to_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o real_a deformation_n destroy_v not_o only_o the_o apostolic_a office_n &_o government_n establish_v by_o christ_n in_o his_o church_n but_o also_o the_o two_o chief_a pillar_n or_o head_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n to_o wit_n our_o lord_n prayer_n and_o the_o apostle_n creed_n then_o follow_v the_o trial_n of_o the_o first_o pretend_v reformation_n which_o be_v also_o show_v to_o have_v destroy_v in_o effect_n the_o other_o two_o chief_a pillar_n of_o christianity_n to_o wit_n the_o divine_a commandment_n and_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o to_o have_v bring_v in_o a_o most_o erroneous_a doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o express_o against_o the_o scripture_n &_o holy_a father_n so_o that_o these_o two_o pretend_a reformation_n be_v show_v to_o have_v make_v up_o between_o they_o the_o hideous_a work_n of_o desolation_n after_o this_o the_o whole_a protestant_a church_n by_o the_o undeniable_a principle_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o christ_n church_n be_v prove_v not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o same_o undeniable_a principle_n the_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n and_o she_o alone_o be_v demonstrate_v to_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o have_v in_o all_o age_n still_o continue_v in_o the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o she_o receive_v from_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n notwithstanding_o the_o calumny_n of_o heretic_n then_o last_o the_o same_o truth_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o mark_n whereby_o the_o true_a church_n be_v clear_o design_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o by_o her_o unity_n sanctity_n universality_n &_o apostolical_a succession_n by_o which_o mark_n the_o holy_a father_n also_o do_v prove_v the_o true_a church_n in_o their_o time_n to_o which_o be_v subjoin_v a_o brief_a examination_n of_o the_o presbyterian_a covenant_n or_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o although_o it_o be_v much_o idolatrize_v of_o late_a be_v show_v to_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o denial_n and_o abjuration_n of_o the_o holy_a faith_n with_o many_o execration_n and_o blasphemy_n against_o it_o this_o brief_o courteous_a reader_n be_v the_o scope_n and_o method_n of_o the_o ensue_a treatise_n which_o the_o author_n thereof_o earnest_o wish_n may_v tend_v to_o thy_o profit_n that_o if_o thou_o be_v a_o new_a convert_v catholic_n thou_o may_v be_v confirm_v thereby_o in_o thy_o holy_a faith_n if_o one_o who_o after_o many_o toss_n in_o error_n be_v seek_v the_o truth_n thou_o may_v be_v assist_v to_o find_v it_o where_o only_o it_o can_v be_v find_v if_o last_o thou_o be_v one_o who_o not_o through_o malice_n but_o through_o negligence_n or_o ignorance_n adhere_v unto_o error_n thou_o may_v be_v stir_v up_o to_o try_v they_o and_o to_o seek_v diligent_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v a_o work_n most_o worthy_a of_o thy_o pain_n neither_o be_v it_o so_o hard_a as_o some_o do_v imagine_v to_o find_v the_o truth_n since_o god_n almighty_a according_a to_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n &_o wisdom_n have_v prepare_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n so_o much_o the_o more_o certain_a &_o easy_a to_o be_v know_v how_o much_o more_o error_n and_o deceit_n in_o it_o bring_v great_a loss_n with_o it_o and_o therefore_o he_o have_v promise_v so_o plain_a and_o direct_v a_o way_n unto_o eternal_a happiness_n that_o fool_n may_v not_o err_v by_o it_o 35.5_o esay_n 35.5_o whence_o it_o be_v evident_a if_o thou_o seek_v this_o way_n with_o diligence_n and_o after_o the_o right_a manner_n thou_o may_v have_v great_a confidence_n by_o god_n grace_n to_o attayn_v unto_o it_o but_o then_o thou_o will_v seek_v it_o in_o the_o right_a way_n according_a to_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o glorious_a doctor_n s._n augustin_n to_o his_o friend_n honoratus_n if_o thou_o do_v use_v fervent_a and_o frequent_a prayer_n 16._o aug_n de_fw-fr utile_n cred●s_n 15_o 16._o strive_v to_o have_v peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o mind_n if_o thou_o will_v hear_v that_o church_n which_o god_n have_v establish_v on_o earth_n with_o so_o great_a authority_n and_o which_o be_v call_v catholic_a both_o by_o she_o own_o &_o by_o stranger_n for_o it_o be_v by_o authority_n only_o whereby_o man_n can_v come_v unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o divin_n truth_n and_o there_o be_v no_o authority_n equal_a unto_o this_o which_o begin_v by_o miracle_n and_o be_v most_o famous_a for_o multltude_n of_o people_n and_o nation_n and_o therefore_o if_o thou_o proceed_v orderly_a at_o this_o authority_n thou_o ought_v to_o begin_v as_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n affirm_v but_o if_o thou_o contemn_v so_o great_a authority_n and_o only_o open_v thy_o ear_n to_o the_o enemy_n and_o calumniator_n of_o so_o famous_a a_o society_n which_o have_v be_v also_o calumniate_v by_o all_o the_o former_a heretic_n as_o well_o as_o by_o these_o of_o this_o age_n thou_o can_v not_o be_v excuse_v neither_o can_v thou_o arrive_v unto_o the_o possession_n of_o solid_a truth_n therefore_o if_o thou_o be_v wise_a follow_v the_o former_a advice_n of_o s._n augustin_n who_o be_v so_o wise_a &_o so_o learned_a a_o doctor_n and_o who_o have_v such_o great_a knowledge_n and_o experience_n in_o this_o affair_n and_o if_o thou_o will_v take_v a_o short_a and_o compendious_a way_n to_o come_v unto_o the_o truth_n try_v only_o that_o one_o question_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o mark_n abovemention_v whereby_o it_o be_v clear_o design_v in_o scripture_n and_o thou_o will_v not_o only_o soon_o find_v that_o they_o can_v agree_v to_o thy_o new_a inconstant_a church_n but_o also_o thou_o will_v quick_o see_v that_o they_o agree_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o have_v ever_o endure_v and_o against_o which_o hell_n gate_n can_v never_o prevail_v and_o so_o with_o the_o true_a church_n thou_o will_v find_v a●l_a truth_n because_o it_o be_v ever_o govern_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n this_o be_v the_o right_a manner_n for_o thou_o to_o attayn_v unto_o the_o truth_n and_o to_o true_a happ●nesse_n to_o which_o that_o god_n almighty_n may_v direct_v and_o bring_v thou_o shall_v be_v earnest_o desire_v by_o thy_o wellwisher_n f._n w._n s._n a_o table_n of_o the_o chapter_n chap._n i._o that_o god_n by_o the_o confusion_n of_o error_n stir_v up_o many_o to_o seek_v the_o truth_n p._n 1._o ch._n ii_o of_o the_o minister_n inconstancy_n and_o of_o the_o alteration_n make_v by_o the_o late_a presbyterian_a reformation_n p._n 8._o ch._n iii_o of_o the_o minister_n dissension_n &_o division_n p._n 15._o ch._n iu._n of_o the_o presbyterian_o rigour_n and_o tyranny_n over_o protestant_n p._n 26._o ch._n v._o of_o the_o presbyterian_o contradict_v their_o own_o principle_n p._n 34._o ch._n vi_o of_o the_o presbyterian_o disobedience_n to_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o of_o their_o pretext_n of_o piety_n p._n 46._o ch._n vii_o of_o episcopacy_n condemn_v as_o antichristian_a by_o the_o presbyterian_o p._n 53._o ch._n viii_o of_o our_o lord_n
superior_n can_v never_o be_v obedient_a to_o their_o heavenly_a sovereign_n when_o the_o law_n of_o man_n be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n then_o it_o be_v better_a to_o obey_v god_n then_o man_n but_o when_o there_o be_v no_o such_o opposition_n then_o the_o law_n of_o god_n oblige_v we_o to_o obedience_n and_o subjection_n s._n paul_n do_v earnest_o exhort_v all_o christian_n to_o this_o duty_n when_o he_o say_v seq_n rom._n 13.1_o &_o seq_n let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o high_a power_n for_o there_o be_v no_o power_n but_o of_o god_n and_o those_o that_o be_v of_o god_n be_v ordain_v therefore_o he_o that_o resist_v the_o power_n resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o resist_v purchase_n to_o themselves_o damnation_n s._n peter_n also_o make_v the_o like_a exhortation_n 1._o pet._n 2.13_o and_o 17._o how_o the_o presbyterian_o have_v carry_v themselves_o in_o the_o duty_n of_o subject_n to_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o to_o their_o other_o superior_n be_v so_o general_o know_v and_o so_o fresh_a in_o all_o man_n memory_n that_o it_o need_v not_o be_v describe_v nor_o amplify_v the_o very_a name_n of_o a_o presbyterian_a be_v sufficient_a now_o to_o raise_v in_o man_n mind_n the_o true_a notion_n of_o one_o who_o will_v obstinate_o deny_v obedience_n to_o those_o to_o who_o he_o owe_v it_o and_o will_v rigorous_o exact_v obedience_n from_o those_o who_o owe_v he_o none_o indeed_o if_o the_o presbyterian_o own_v word_n be_v take_v they_o will_v be_v esteem_v not_o only_a saint_n but_o also_o most_o loyal_a and_o obedient_a subject_n for_o so_o often_o they_o have_v term_v themselves_o but_o their_o action_n always_o betray_v their_o word_n 4._o conf._n west_n ch_n 33._o n._n 4._o they_o profess_v in_o their_o new_a confession_n of_o faith_n that_o no_o difference_n of_o religion_n yea_o infidelity_n itself_o can_v take_v away_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n just_a right_n nor_o his_o people_n obedience_n and_o duty_n to_o he_o and_o yet_o in_o their_o practice_n they_o will_v not_o admit_v the_o king_n till_o he_o swear_v and_o subscribe_v their_o covenant_n and_o solemn_a league_n which_o many_o thought_n be_v very_o bitter_a potion_n that_o go_v much_o against_o his_o stomach_n many_o other_o instance_n may_v be_v bring_v of_o their_o inordinat_a carriage_n to_o their_o superior_n and_o other_o by_o which_o they_o raise_v both_o scandal_n and_o prejudice_n against_o their_o religion_n for_o people_n see_v they_o to_o be_v evil_a subject_n and_o worse_a master_n can_v not_o think_v they_o to_o be_v good_a christian_n but_o i_o forbear_v not_o be_v willing_a to_o rip_v up_o too_o much_o their_o sore_n wish_v rather_o that_o all_o their_o bypast_a miscarriage_n may_v be_v forget_v and_o bury_v by_o their_o calm_a carriage_n and_o dutiful_a obedience_n in_o time_n to_o come_v but_o apparent_o some_o in_o present_a power_n have_v no_o great_a hope_n of_o much_o voluntary_a amendment_n in_o they_o unless_o the_o rod_n of_o discipline_n be_v still_o keep_v over_o their_o head_n for_o a_o eminent_a english_a officer_n in_o his_o print_a letter_n above_o cite_v speak_v of_o the_o presbyterian_o 74._o christ_n mod._n p._n 74._o say_v if_o they_o be_v not_o close_o look_v unto_o they_o will_v set_v all_o on_o fire_n again_o then_o for_o their_o pretext_n of_o piety_n i_o observe_v great_a show_n but_o no_o substance_n some_o floorish_n but_o small_a fruit_n huge_a pretext_n but_o no_o performance_n we_o have_v indeed_o much_o preach_v pray_v fast_a and_o such_o like_a exercise_n but_o what_o be_v their_o long_a preach_n nothing_o but_o continual_a praise_n of_o the_o covenant_n the_o solemn_a league_n and_o presbytery_n which_o they_o cry_v up_o to_o the_o heaven_n and_o omit_v as_o our_o saviour_n observe_v of_o the_o pharisee_n the_o weighty_a matter_n of_o god_n law_n 23._o math._n 23._o v._n 23._o as_o judgement_n mercy_n and_o faith_n yea_o their_o sermon_n be_v replenish_v with_o constant_a and_o most_o bitter_a rail_n against_o their_o opposer_n and_o all_o those_o who_o do_v not_o favour_v their_o cause_n by_o which_o mean_n they_o arm_v the_o people_n with_o fury_n to_o advance_v the_o covenant_n and_o presbytery_n what_o be_v their_o fast_n but_o humiliation_n as_o the_o prophet_n esay_n say_v for_o strife_n &_o debate_n 6._o esay_n 58._o v._o 6._o and_o to_o sin_n with_o the_o fist_n of_o wikednesse_n god_n faith_n to_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o this_o the_o fast_o that_o i_o have_v choose_v to_o loose_v the_o band_n of_o wickedness_n to_o undo_v the_o heavy_a burden_n and_o to_o let_v the_o oppress_v go_v free_a &_o that_o you_o break_v every_o yoke_n but_o the_o fast_n which_o the_o presbyterian_o have_v choose_v be_v contrary_a for_o their_o fast_n be_v to_o tie_v more_o firm_o their_o covenant_n which_o have_v prove_v a_o band_n of_o wickedness_n to_o lay_v heavy_a burden_n upon_o the_o people_n conscience_n to_o oppress_v these_o who_o be_v free_a and_o to_o augment_v their_o yoke_n by_o invent_v many_o new_a oath_n to_o the_o oppression_n of_o many_o soul_n it_o be_v much_o observe_v that_o short_o after_o their_o solemn_a fast_n we_o be_v always_o sure_a of_o some_o great_a clap_n the_o fast_o be_v ordinary_o a_o preparation_n to_o some_o violence_n or_o evil_a work_n that_o be_v intend_v this_o make_v many_o understand_v what_o queen_n marie_n stuart_n mean_v by_o that_o famous_a say_n that_o she_o be_v as_o much_o afraid_a of_o a_o fast_a of_o the_o minister_n as_o of_o a_o army_n of_o soldier_n for_o experience_n teach_v she_o that_o these_o fast_n be_v sure_a prognostikc_n of_o ensue_a tempest_n their_o long_a prayer_n also_o which_o be_v often_o season_v with_o tautology_n and_o sometime_o with_o no_o good_a sense_n do_v not_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v saint_n more_fw-mi they_o the_o like_a do_v sanctify_v the_o pharisee_n they_o brag_v much_o of_o the_o spirit_n but_o show_v no_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n if_o these_o be_v the_o fruit_n which_o s._n paul_n reckon_v out_o to_o the_o gallatian_n 5.22_o gal._n 5.22_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n say_v he_o be_v love_n joy_n peace_n long-suffering_a gentlnesse_n goodness_n faith_n meekness_n etc._n etc._n they_o rather_o show_v and_o perform_v the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n which_o the_o same_o apostle_n do_v there_o recount_v the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v manifest_a 19.20_o ibid._n v._o 19.20_o which_o be_v fornication_n etc._n etc._n hatred_n variance_n emulation_n wrath_n strife_n sedition_n heresy_n envy_n murder_n etc._n etc._n if_o they_o live_v in_o the_o spirit_n than_o they_o shall_v have_v walk_v in_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o same_o apostle_n exhort's_n and_o so_o they_o will_v have_v be_v better_o believe_v in_o a_o word_n if_o piety_n consist_v in_o many_o external_a sigh_n and_o groan_n in_o long_a prayer_n and_o grace_n in_o wring_v of_o hand_n &_o make_v of_o strange_a face_n in_o turn_v of_o the_o eye_n and_o in_o doleful_a houling_n and_o cry_n which_o be_v common_o call_v the_o seek_v if_o piety_n i_o say_v consist_v in_o such_o thing_n we_o have_v abondance_n of_o it_o but_o if_o it_o require_v some_o great_a perfection_n and_o better_a fruit_n then_o we_o be_v very_o scarce_o of_o it_o indeed_o if_o we_o will_v hear_v and_o believe_v these_o presbyterian_a minister_n we_o be_v the_o happy_a people_n of_o the_o world_n for_o they_o say_v we_o only_o of_o all_o nation_n have_v the_o honour_n to_o be_v covenanter_n with_o god_n we_o have_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o great_a purity_n than_o geneva_n itself_o we_o have_v such_o a_o clear_a and_o engyre_a light_n that_o the_o like_a have_v not_o shine_v to_o any_o other_o nation_n since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n yea_o one_o who_o be_v esteem_v a_o principal_a apostle_n among_o they_o do_v not_o stick_v to_o affirm_v in_o the_o pulpit_n amid_o the_o manifold_a confusion_n trouble_n and_o misery_n which_o have_v fall_v upon_o this_o church_n &_o nation_n that_o the_o angel_n and_o saint_n of_o heaven_n if_o they_o can_v leave_v the_o sight_n of_o god_n will_v be_v glad_a to_o come_v down_o and_o see_v the_o admirable_a order_n and_o beauty_n of_o the_o presbyterian_a church_n of_o scotland_n neither_o be_v this_o to_o be_v much_o wonder_v at_o for_o it_o be_v probable_a he_o speak_v as_o he_o think_v and_o as_o the_o proverb_n be_v the_o crow_n think_v ever_o her_o own_o bird_n fair_o and_o every_o fool_n esteem'_v much_o his_o own_o babel_n but_o many_o indifferent_a man_n think_v that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o those_o of_o who_o s._n paul_n speak_v to_o the_o philippian_n 3.18.19_o philip._n 3.18.19_o enemy_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n and_o who_o glory_n be_v in_o their_o confusion_n these_o practice_n at_o least_o a_o great_a part_n of_o they_o be_v the_o
the_o same_o the_o divine_a word_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v teach_v and_o after_o he_o have_v prove_v from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n above_o cite_v that_o bishop_n who_o have_v power_n of_o judge_a priest_n be_v above_o priest_n then_o he_o prove_v also_o the_o bishop_n superiority_n by_o their_o power_n of_o ordination_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a say_v he_o that_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o priest_n can_v be_v equal_a for_o that_o order_n beget_v father_n unto_o the_o church_n but_o the_o other_o have_v no_o power_n to_o beget_v father_n it_o only_o beget_v child_n unto_o the_o church_n by_o the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n and_o not_o father_n and_o master_n and_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o one_o can_v ordain_v a_o priest_n who_o have_v get_v no_o imposition_n of_o hand_n 53._o aug._n lib_n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la hare_n 53._o for_o ordination_n s._n augustin_n also_o reckon_v up_o this_o error_n of_o aerius_n in_o his_o book_n of_o heresy_n yea_o s._n hierom_n who_o of_o all_o the_o holy_a father_n do_v most_o extol_v the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n and_o bring_v it_o as_o will_v seem_v in_o some_o comparison_n with_o episcopacy_n except_v always_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v euagr._fw-la hier._n epist_n ad_fw-la euagr._fw-la what_o do_v a_o bishop_n except_o ordination_n that_o a_o priest_n do_v not_o also_o by_o all_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o if_o the_o presbyterian_o have_v be_v live_v above_o tuelve_v hundred_o year_n ago_o they_o have_v be_v condemn_v in_o this_o point_n as_o heretic_n by_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o that_o with_o more_o reason_n than_o the_o aerian_o who_o never_o proceed_v to_o their_o height_n of_o arrogance_n to_o call_v the_o office_n of_o bishop_n unlawful_a and_o antichristian_a now_o against_o all_o this_o what_o bring_v the_o presbyterian_o for_o themselves_o pure_a scripture_n at_o least_o they_o pretend_v so_o which_o be_v a_o ordinary_a custom_n to_o all_o those_o who_o error_n be_v most_o against_o scripture_n they_o bring_v ordinary_o two_o place_n wherein_o they_o have_v great_a confidence_n the_o first_o be_v math._n 20.26_o where_o our_o saviour_n say_v unto_o the_o apostle_n you_o know_v that_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o gentile_n over-rule_v they_o and_o they_o that_o be_v the_o great_a exercise_n power_n against_o they_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o among_o you_o etc._n etc._n the_o like_a word_n be_v repeat_v the_o 22._o of_o s._n luke_n v._o 24._o the_o second_o place_n be_v 1._o tim._n 4._o v._n 14._o where_o the_o apostle_n say_v to_o timothee_n neglect_v not_o the_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o which_o be_v give_v thou_o by_o prophecy_n with_o imposition_n of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n or_o of_o the_o eldership_n as_o some_o of_o their_o bible_n translate_v it_o i_o consider_v diligent_o these_o place_n and_o the_o rest_n which_o they_o bring_v and_o i_o can_v not_o find_v in_o any_o of_o they_o either_o superiority_n of_o pastor_n condemn_v nor_o equality_n approve_v much_o less_o a_o judicatorie_a of_o 9_o or_o 10._o minister_n with_o a_o changeable_a moderator_n establish_v to_o judge_n over_o their_o brethren_n in_o all_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a there_o need_v no_o more_o to_o know_v the_o truth_n here_o but_o to_o open_v our_o eye_n be_v and_o read_v the_o place_n for_o impudence_n itself_o can_v affirm_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_v there_o express_o condemn_v the_o one_o or_o approve_v the_o other_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o vain_a and_o false_a pretence_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o to_o allege_v their_o discipline_n to_o be_v contain_v express_o in_o the_o scripture_n after_o express_v scripture_n fail_v they_o than_o they_o run_v to_o their_o own_o gloss_n and_o consequence_n upon_o the_o scripiure_n which_o they_o will_v have_v the_o people_n to_o believe_v as_o scripture_n wherein_o they_o commit_v a_o double_a deceit_n 1._o to_o promise_v pure_a scripture_n and_o then_o in_o place_n of_o it_o to_o give_v you_o their_o own_o gloss_n or_o rather_o guess_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o scripture_n 2._o to_o oblige_v you_o to_o believe_v these_o gloss_n and_o humane_a invention_n to_o be_v scripture_n or_o as_o scripture_n as_o if_o one_o who_o have_v promise_v to_o give_v a_o other_o a_o quantity_n of_o gold_n and_o in_o place_n of_o it_o will_v give_v himon_o brass_n and_o then_o after_o this_o deceit_n will_v also_o oblige_v he_o to_o esteem_v the_o brass_n to_o be_v gold_n but_o albeit_o these_o gloss_n and_o consequence_n be_v not_o in_o scripture_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v they_o be_v clear_a of_o themselves_o and_o necessary_o deduce_v from_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o presbyterian_o pretend_v i_o find_v this_o pretence_n also_o to_o be_v false_a for_o if_o they_o be_v so_o evident_a and_o necessary_a then_o man_n of_o judgement_n will_v easy_o see_v such_o gloss_n and_o make_v such_o consequence_n but_o the_o holy_a father_n who_o be_v not_o only_a man_n of_o great_a judgement_n but_o be_v also_o most_o eminent_a for_o learning_n and_o holiness_n never_o make_v any_o such_o interpretation_n and_o consequence_n upon_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o the_o presbyterian_a gloss_n &c._n &c._n can_v be_v clear_a and_o evident_a which_o such_o holy_a and_o pierce_a eye_n be_v can_v not_o see_v or_o if_o they_o see_v they_o it_o be_v only_o to_o condemn_v they_o as_o have_v be_v show_v and_o albeit_o this_o authority_n be_v more_o than_o sufficient_a to_o overthrow_v the_o pretend_a clearness_n of_o all_o these_o new_a gloss_n yet_o when_o i_o consider_v that_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o all_o the_o protestant_n side_n as_o all_o the_o lutheran_n in_o germany_n suedland_n and_o denmark_n who_o have_v their_o superintendent_o and_o the_o late_a protestant_a church_n of_o england_n scotland_n and_o ireland_n and_o which_o be_v to_o be_v much_o here_o consider_v the_o scottish_a church_n at_o its_o first_o reformation_n never_o make_v any_o such_o interpretation_n upon_o these_o scripture_n but_o have_v their_o bishop_n and_o superintendent_o then_o i_o esteem_v it_o a_o madness_n to_o imagine_v that_o these_o presbyterian_a gloss_n can_v be_v clear_a and_o necessary_a which_o neither_o the_o holy_a father_n the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n and_o so_o many_o learned_a protestant_n and_o all_o their_o church_n can_v not_o see_v and_o albeit_o the_o french_a protestant_n do_v admit_v of_o the_o consistorial_n discipline_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o declare_v episcopacy_n to_o be_v absolute_o antichristian_a or_o that_o their_o form_n be_v only_a christian_a much_o less_o do_v they_o think_v it_o so_o necessary_a as_o to_o overturn_v kingdom_n &_o commonwealth_n for_o set_v it_o up_o of_o which_o beza_n and_o du_fw-fr moulin_n may_v be_v sufficient_a witness_n 12._o beza_n count_v errast_n fol_z 1._o mons_fw-la moulin_n buck_n 30._o a●t_n sect_n 12._o the_o first_o say_v whosoever_o do_v judge_v this_o discipline_n not_o only_o unprofitable_a but_o hurtful_a to_o their_o church_n let_v they_o enjoy_v their_o own_o sense_n and_o much_o more_o to_o this_o purpose_n the_o other_o say_v in_o so_o much_o as_o concern_v ecclesiastical_a discipline_n we_o do_v not_o hold_v that_o equality_n of_o pastor_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a who_o esteem_v not_o that_o order_n a_o point_n of_o faith_n or_o a_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n we_o live_v thanks_o be_v to_o god_n in_o brotherly_a concord_n with_o our_o neighbour_a church_n which_o follow_v a_o other_o form_n &_o where_o there_o be_v bishop_n &_o some_o superiority_n hier._n in_o veron_n tom_n 2._o contro_fw-mi de_fw-fr hier._n and_o mons_fw-la r_o blondel_n a_o famous_a minister_n in_o france_n have_v late_o write_v a_o book_n entitle_v of_o the_o primacy_n in_o the_o church_n where_o he_o teach_v that_o although_o superiority_n of_o pastor_n be_v not_o by_o divine_a right_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o against_o divin_n right_a and_o therefore_o neither_o be_v equality_n of_o pastor_n by_o divine_a right_n all_o which_o be_v very_o far_o from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o our_o scottish_a presbyterian_o who_o stand_v very_o single_a and_o bare_a of_o all_o authority_n divine_a and_o humane_a have_v all_o the_o world_n against_o they_o not_o only_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o whole_a ancient_a church_n but_o also_o all_o the_o old_a protestant_n both_o lutheran_n and_o calvinist_n and_o if_o we_o shall_v add_v unto_o these_o the_o independent_o and_o anabaptist_n and_o other_o new_a protestant_n who_o admit_v of_o a_o equality_n among_o pastor_n but_o condemn_v presbyterian_a power_n and_o tyranny_n their_o small_a authority_n and_o number_n be_v yet_o much_o diminish_v and_o the_o clearness_n of_o their_o gloss_n be_v much_o obscure_v last_o if_o we_o will_v take_v away_o from_o the_o presbyterian_o number_n all_o these_o who_o by_o deceit_n or_o force_n be_v gain_v unto_o it_o their_o authority_n will_v appear_v
very_o slender_a and_o the_o number_n of_o know_v and_o will_v presbyterian_o scarce_o considerable_a for_o now_o when_o force_n have_v fail_v they_o many_o be_v daily_o fall_v from_o they_o as_o i_o find_v the_o presbyterian_o destitute_a of_o all_o authority_n to_o back_o their_o new_a gloss_n so_o i_o perceive_v their_o reason_n and_o consequence_n to_o be_v mere_a sophism_n as_o this_o which_o they_o wrest_v out_o of_o our_o saviour_n word_n in_o s._n matthew_n above_o cite_v do_v show_v christ_n say_v they_o forbid_v rule_a among_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o gentile_n use_v over_o their_o subject_n say_v it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o among_o you_o but_o whosoever_o will_v be_v the_o great_a among_o you_o let_v he_o be_v your_o servant_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o say_v they_o none_o ought_v to_o be_v great_a than_o a_o other_o but_o all_o equal_a and_o from_o this_o equality_n they_o infer_v that_o there_o aught_o to_o be_v a_o presbytery_n which_o be_v as_o ridiculous_a as_o if_o you_o will_v say_v the_o king_n or_o supreme_a magistrate_n forbid_v all_o domineer_a or_o tyrannize_a of_o his_o subordinate_a judge_n such_o as_o be_v use_v among_o the_o turk_n therefore_o he_o forbid_v all_o superiority_n of_o one_o over_o a_o other_o and_o make_v all_o his_o judge_n equal_a whereas_o indeed_o there_o follow_v no_o more_o but_o that_o he_o forbid_v turkish_a tyranny_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n christ_n forbid_v among_o the_o apostle_n heathenish_a tyranny_n but_o not_o lawful_a and_o christian_a superiority_n yea_o do_v not_o christ_n propound_v himself_o for_o a_o example_n in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o be_v not_o christ_n superior_a to_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o it_o be_v evident_a he_o only_o require_v there_o great_a humility_n in_o those_o who_o be_v to_o be_v in_o great_a dignity_n as_o s._n hierom_n write_v on_o this_o place_n do_v observe_v so_o that_o our_o saviour_n word_n here_o be_v so_o far_o from_o infer_v a_o equality_n that_o they_o necessary_o suppose_v a_o inequality_n of_o pastor_n and_o if_o such_o presbyterian_a consequence_n be_v admit_v they_o may_v upon_o the_o same_o ground_n bring_v in_o a_o level_n in_o the_o civil_a as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a estate_n yea_o they_o will_v destroy_v their_o presbytery_n which_o they_o will_v have_v only_o to_o stand_v as_o the_o independent_o do_v reason_n well_o against_o they_o for_o it_o be_v much_o less_o lawful_a for_o tuentie_n or_o many_o to_o domineer_v over_o their_o brethren_n as_o the_o presbyterian_o have_v do_v and_o will_v do_v then_o for_o one_o of_o worth_n &_o virtue_n to_o have_v &_o exercise_n christian_n superiority_n and_o jurisdiction_n as_o the_o old_a protestant_n do_v show_v the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o first_o consequence_n by_o which_o they_o will_v wrest_v from_o our_o saviour_n word_n a_o equality_n of_o pastor_n so_o the_o independent_o and_o other_o new_a protestant_n do_v show_v the_o falsehood_n of_o their_o second_o consequence_n by_o which_o they_o will_v infer_v from_o that_o suppose_a equality_n the_o government_n of_o their_o presbytery_n for_o these_o new_a congregation_n do_v admit_v equality_n and_o yet_o will_v not_o hear_v of_o presbytery_n the_o like_a insufficiency_n may_v be_v show_v of_o their_o gloss_n and_o consequence_n upon_o that_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o timothee_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o presbytery_n from_o which_o they_o will_v most_o ridiculous_o infer_v parity_n of_o pastor_n and_o the_o whole_a platform_n of_o their_o discipline_n with_o the_o power_n of_o their_o sovereign_a judicatory_a which_o they_o call_v presbytery_n all_o which_o gloss_n and_o consequence_n be_v not_o only_o against_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n but_o also_o against_o the_o sense_n and_o interpretation_n of_o almost_o all_o the_o old_a and_o new_a protestant_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v they_o to_o be_v false_a and_o groundless_a and_o therefore_o for_o brevity_n sake_n we_o will_v not_o insist_v long_o in_o refutation_n of_o they_o this_o only_o may_v be_v observe_v by_o the_o way_n that_o the_o presbyterian_o be_v bring_v to_o a_o hard_a straight_o when_o for_o all_o their_o discipline_n which_o they_o brag_n be_v so_o clear_o in_o scripture_n they_o be_v enforce_v to_o run_v to_o one_o word_n and_o that_o also_o they_o must_v etymologize_v and_o understand_v against_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o christian_a nation_n and_o age_n but_o albeit_o the_o presbyterian_a discipline_n can_v be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n nor_o father_n nor_o can_v by_o any_o right_a reason_n be_v draw_v from_o they_o yet_o perhaps_o it_o may_v be_v good_a in_o itself_o and_o a_o heavenly_a thing_n well_o then_o we_o shall_v according_a to_o to_o our_o saviour_n rule_n try_v it_o brief_o by_o its_o fruit_n it_o make_v indeed_o great_a promise_n of_o itself_o and_o have_v some_o fair_a floorish_n but_o the_o fruit_n do_v not_o answer_v to_o expectation_n neither_o be_v they_o proportionable_a to_o the_o great_a labour_n that_o be_v bestow_v in_o plant_v nor_o to_o the_o abundance_n of_o blood_n that_o be_v shed_v for_o water_v that_o unhappy_a tree_n among_o many_o high_a commendation_n of_o presbytery_n which_o be_v collect_v in_o the_o 34._o chap._n of_o the_o survey_n of_o the_o holy_a discipline_n it_o be_v say_v in_o queen_n elyzabeths_n time_n the_o want_n of_o presbytery_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o evil_a it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v hope_v that_o any_o commonwealth_n can_v flourish_v without_o it_o without_o this_o discipline_n there_o can_v be_v no_o right_a religion_n these_o who_o reject_v this_o discipline_n refuse_v christ_n to_o reign_v over_o they_o at_o the_o beginning_n also_o of_o these_o trouble_n in_o scotland_n the_o people_n be_v feed_v with_o large_a promise_n of_o the_o good_a of_o presbytery_n for_o than_o it_o be_v say_v that_o all_o prelatical_a pride_n and_o tyranny_n shall_v cease_v all_o innovation_n shall_v have_v a_o end_n the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v restore_v and_o all_o blissing_n shall_v be_v pour_v down_o with_o presbytery_n upon_o this_o nation_n these_o be_v the_o promise_n &_o floorish_n of_o presbytery_n but_o the_o fruit_n have_v prove_v just_a contrary_n for_o there_o be_v never_o more_o yea_o hardly_o ever_o such_o pride_n and_o tyranny_n never_o more_o innovation_n never_o great_a misery_n and_o calamity_n and_o never_o less_o solid_a religion_n and_o more_o inclination_n to_o atheism_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o reflect_v on_o what_o have_v be_v say_v above_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v whatsoever_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v but_o our_o saviour_n do_v require_v meekness_n and_o humility_n in_o the_o governor_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o the_o covenanter_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o many_o have_v carry_v themselves_o as_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o require_v these_o virtue_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_a vice_n therefore_o many_o of_o the_o wise_a sort_n of_o those_o in_o england_n who_o be_v weary_a of_o episcopacy_n after_o they_o have_v take_v a_o short_a trial_n of_o presbytery_n soon_o smell_v out_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o and_o find_v they_o have_v change_v for_o the_o far_o worst_a and_o that_o their_o conscience_n be_v oppress_v by_o more_o heavy_a taskmaster_n they_o do_v quick_o cast_v off_o that_o heavy_a yoke_n and_o so_o find_v out_o a_o three_o way_n of_o independency_n have_v many_o way_n since_o that_o time_n both_o outwitted_a and_o over_o throw_v the_o presbyterian_o by_o their_o own_o weapon_n to_o conclude_v this_o matter_n i_o find_v after_o a_o serious_a trial_n that_o superiority_n of_o pastor_n be_v conform_a both_o to_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n that_o episcopacy_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v antichristian_a and_o against_o god_n word_n that_o it_o be_v most_o christian_n and_o express_o contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v so_o understand_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o government_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o the_o pure_a time_n when_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n be_v not_o so_o much_o a_o place_n of_o honour_n as_o a_o work_n of_o labour_n and_o the_o next_o degree_n to_o martyrdom_n as_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n thritie_n of_o which_o and_o above_o do_v successive_o after_o s._n peter_n shed_v their_o blood_n for_o christ_n and_o upon_o the_o other_o part_n i_o can_v not_o find_v parity_n of_o minister_n and_o the_o new_a discipline_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o rather_o i_o find_v that_o it_o be_v against_o scripture_n against_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n against_o sound_a reason_n and_o good_a government_n against_o many_o protestant_a church_n &_o the_o learnede_a man_n of_o that_o profession_n and_o against_o the_o practice_n of_o our_o first_o reformer_n and_o
tim_n 3.13_o what_o the_o first_o reformer_n who_o can_v not_o on_o a_o sudden_a deny_v all_o truth_n leave_v untouched_a your_o second_o presbyterian_a reformer_n have_v abolish_v as_o they_o have_v do_v here_o the_o hymn_n of_o glory_n which_o be_v say_v in_o praise_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n and_o for_o which_o you_o have_v get_v the_o noble_a exchange_n of_o continual_a praise_n of_o the_o covenant_n &_o presbytery_n but_o as_o the_o great_a council_n of_o nice_a do_v add_v unto_o the_o ancient_a hymn_n of_o glory_n to_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n that_o clause_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n etc._n etc._n for_o confusion_n of_o the_o arian_n heresy_n so_o also_o it_o have_v by_o the_o same_o addition_n prophetical_o foretell_v the_o continuance_n of_o it_o for_o ever_o to_o the_o confusion_n of_o this_o new_a sect_n call_v presbytery_n which_o be_v most_o consonant_a to_o that_o of_o s._n paul_n to_o god_n be_v glory_n in_o the_o church_n and_o in_o christ_n jesus_n to_o all_o generation_n world_n without_o end_n amen_o 3.21_o ephes_n 3.21_o that_o church_n which_o have_v triumph_v over_o the_o arian_n who_o corrupt_v this_o glorious_a hymn_n will_v also_o triumph_v over_o the_o presbyterian_o who_o have_v abolish_v it_o yea_o this_o hymn_n shall_v not_o only_o continue_v to_o the_o world_n end_n in_o the_o church_n militant_a but_o it_o shall_v be_v also_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a which_o shall_v never_o cease_v for_o all_o eternity_n to_o sing_v praise_n &_o glory_n unto_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n thus_o end_v my_o catholic_a friend_n who_o word_n i_o find_v to_o be_v more_o weighty_a a_o good_a space_n after_o than_o they_o appear_v to_o i_o at_o the_o time_n when_o he_o speak_v they_o moreover_o i_o remember_v he_o desire_v i_o to_o consider_v that_o these_o innovation_n against_o our_o lord_n prayer_n and_o the_o hymn_n of_o glory_n be_v such_o black_a action_n that_o the_o prime_a presbyterian_o who_o introduce_v they_o be_v ashamed_a to_o make_v act_n to_o forbid_v they_o as_o they_o have_v do_v for_o abolish_n of_o episcopacy_n and_o some_o other_o point_n but_o only_o bring_v they_o in_o by_o a_o desuetude_n as_o they_o speak_v and_o so_o wear_v they_o out_o of_o use_n which_o show_v say_v he_o that_o they_o will_v glad_o have_v some_o thing_n do_v covert_o which_o they_o be_v ashamed_a to_o avow_v public_o chap._n x._o of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n deny_v to_o be_v apostolical_a by_o the_o presbyterian_o there_o be_v hardly_o any_o thing_n that_o the_o presbyterian_o do_v which_o make_v i_o stumble_v so_o much_o as_o their_o innovation_n concern_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n they_o be_v not_o content_a with_o their_o reformation_n or_o rather_o abrogation_n of_o the_o apostolic_a government_n unless_o they_o also_o do_v deny_v the_o creed_n to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o wear_v it_o out_o of_o use_n as_o they_o have_v do_v our_o lord_n prayer_n at_o the_o end_n of_o of_o their_o new_a catechism_n they_o speak_v thus_o of_o the_o creed_n fine_a shore_n cat._n west_n in_o fine_a albeit_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o doctrine_n comprise_v in_o the_o abridgement_n common_o call_v the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v full_o set_v forth_o in_o each_o of_o the_o catechism_n so_o as_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o insert_v the_o creed_n itself_o yet_o it_o be_v here_o annex_v not_o as_o though_o it_o be_v compose_v by_o the_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n in_o which_o word_n they_o reach_v covert_o two_o thing_n 1._o that_o the_o creed_n itself_o be_v not_o necessary_a if_o we_o have_v the_o substance_n of_o it_o as_o it_o be_v explain_v in_o the_o new_a presbyterian_a catechism_n 2._o that_o it_o need_v not_o be_v esteem_v to_o be_v compose_v by_o the_o apostle_n but_o their_o practice_n do_v show_v more_o evident_o their_o meaning_n for_o they_o do_v not_o only_o declare_v it_o not_o to_o be_v apostolical_a and_o therefore_o to_o be_v only_o a_o humane_a collection_n but_o also_o they_o do_v no_o more_o say_v it_o neither_o do_v they_o require_v it_o to_o be_v say_v any_o more_o of_o other_o as_o the_o custom_n be_v former_o at_o baptism_n and_o by_o these_o mean_n they_o put_v it_o out_o both_o of_o estimation_n and_o use_n this_o innovation_n give_v great_a scandal_n to_o many_o who_o think_v just_o they_o can_v thereafter_o be_v sure_a of_o nothing_o since_o their_o creed_n be_v call_v in_o question_n this_o be_v universal_o esteem_v before_o the_o covenant_n begin_v the_o badge_n or_o mark_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o the_o principal_a foundation_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n the_o authority_n of_o it_o be_v hold_v so_o sacred_a that_o it_o be_v a_o ordinary_a proverb_n in_o man_n mouth_n be_v when_o they_o will_v give_v great_a assurance_n of_o perform_v any_o thing_n they_o have_v promise_v that_o before_o they_o fail_v they_o will_v as_o soon_o deny_v their_o creed_n as_o it_o be_v call_v the_o apostle_n creed_n so_o it_o be_v teach_v for_o such_o &_o so_o it_o be_v believe_v and_o esteem_v to_o be_v it_o be_v public_o say_v in_o the_o church_n by_o parent_n at_o the_o baptism_n of_o their_o child_n and_o it_o be_v require_v to_o be_v say_v by_o the_o people_n when_o they_o be_v catechize_v but_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v alter_v and_o overturn_v by_o the_o presbyterian_o the_o authority_n and_o esteem_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v dash_v by_o their_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v apostolical_a and_o the_o custom_n of_o say_v it_o both_o public_o &_o private_o be_v take_v away_o so_o that_o it_o be_v soon_o wear_v out_o both_o of_o use_n and_o request_n if_o they_o do_v this_o so_o easy_o with_o our_o lord_n prayer_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n how_o much_o more_o easy_o will_v they_o do_v it_o with_o the_o creed_n which_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n and_o which_o they_o pretend_v to_o be_v a_o mere_a humane_a collection_n and_o so_o in_o a_o short_a time_n they_o will_v get_v it_o to_o be_v altogether_o slight_v as_o a_o humane_a invention_n and_o banish_v out_o of_o the_o memory_n of_o man_n wherefore_o be_v desirous_a to_o penetrate_v this_o matter_n more_o inward_o i_o find_v after_o some_o diligence_n that_o the_o same_o ground_n which_o can_v be_v bring_v for_o the_o apostolic_a authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v also_o bring_v and_o that_o in_o a_o eminent_a degree_n for_o the_o like_a authority_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o therefore_o if_o we_o receive_v the_o one_o we_o can_v reject_v the_o other_o i_o shall_v brief_o collect_v what_o i_o find_v or_o have_v be_v show_v unto_o i_o for_o the_o apostolic_a authority_n great_a excellency_n &_o frequent_v laudable_a use_n of_o this_o divine_a symbol_n seq_fw-la baron_fw-fr tom_fw-mi 1._o annal._n a_o 44._o n._n 15._o &_o seq_fw-la cardinal_n baronius_n in_o the_o 1._o tome_fw-mi of_o his_o annal_n do_v show_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a &_o ancient_a father_n that_o the_o creed_n be_v compose_v by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n a_o little_a before_o they_o be_v to_o part_v and_o go_v into_o several_a country_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n unto_o the_o gentile_n to_o the_o end_n there_o may_v be_v a_o certain_a short_a clear_a rule_n of_o faith_n in_o which_o they_o all_o agree_v wherein_o they_o be_v to_o instruct_v all_o person_n and_o by_o which_o as_o by_o a_o certain_a badge_n all_o christian_n may_v he_o know_v for_o this_o cause_n it_o be_v not_o commit_v to_o writing_n but_o be_v deliver_v by_o lively_a voice_n and_o imprint_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o christian_n by_o the_o faithful_a diligence_n of_o the_o apostle_n this_o s._n hierom_n 61._o hier._n epist_n 61._o and_o s._n augustin_n do_v testify_v the_o first_o say_v the_o symbol_n of_o our_o faith_n &_o hope_n which_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o write_v in_o paper_n or_o ink_n but_o in_o the_o fleshly_a table_n of_o the_o heart_n the_o other_o affirm_v symb._n aug._n ser_n 119._o the_o temp_n idem_fw-la ser_n 69._o de_fw-la expos_fw-la symb._n that_o the_o creed_n be_v not_o write_v that_o it_o may_v be_v retain_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o again_o he_o say_v the_o holy_a apostle_n do_v deliver_v a_o certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v comprehend_v in_o tuelve_n article_n according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o call_v a_o symbol_n by_o which_o the_o faithful_a may_v hold_v catholic_a unity_n and_o tread_v under_o foot_n heretical_a impiety_n to_o these_o two_o great_a doctor_n 81._o ambro._n ser_n 38._o &_o epist_n 81._o agree_v also_o s._n ambrose_n who_o say_v the_o holy_a faith_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o symbol_n of_o the_o tuelve_n apostles_n who_o as_o skiful_a artificer_n meet_v together_o have_v make_v a_o key_n by_o common_a
counsel_n and_o again_o let_v we_o believe_v say_v he_o the_o symbol_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v ever_o preserve_v and_o keep_v his_o inviolate_a and_o if_o we_o will_v ascend_v high_o 27._o s._n iren._n lib._n 1._o c._n 2._o &_o lib._n 3._o c._n 4._o s._n clement_n epist_n 1._o ad_fw-la frat_fw-la domini_fw-la basil_n de_fw-fr de_fw-fr sp._n s_o c._n 27._o s_n ireneus_fw-la bishop_n of_o lion_n and_o disciple_n of_o s._n polycarpus_n show_v that_o diverse_a nation_n believe_v without_o scripture_n by_o tradition_n which_o certain_o be_v of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n s._n clement_n the_o disciple_n of_o s._n peter_n &_o coadiutor_n of_o s._n paul_n do_v testify_v the_o same_o diverse_a other_o father_n may_v be_v see_v cite_v in_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n tom_n 1._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la scripto_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 4._o s._n basil_n do_v reckon_v the_o apostle_n creed_n as_o a_o principal_a apostolic_a tradition_n and_o in_o a_o word_n i_o find_v that_o all_o christian_a nation_n and_o age_n have_v bear_v testimony_n of_o this_o truth_n moreover_o i_o find_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n this_o symbol_n be_v hold_v in_o so_o great_a reverence_n that_o in_o general_a counsel_n it_o use_v to_o be_v first_o recite_v symb._n baron_fw-fr ubi_fw-la su_fw-es pra_fw-la aug._n de_fw-fr symb._n and_o lay_v down_o as_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o whole_a ecclesiastic_a building_n as_o baronius_n do_v show_v to_o this_o purpose_n s._n augustin_n call_v it_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n upon_o which_o the_o edifice_n of_o the_o church_n build_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n do_v rise_v 96._o ad_fw-la cat._n lib._n 3._o c._n 1._o leo_fw-la ad_fw-la pul._n aug._n ep_v 96._o and_o s._n leo_n say_v that_o this_o short_a and_o perfect_a confession_n of_o the_o catholic_a symbol_n which_o be_v seal_v by_o 12._o sentence_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v so_o furnish_v with_o heavenly_a armour_n that_o by_o this_o sword_n alone_o all_o opinious_a of_o heretic_n may_v be_v cut_v of_o as_o i_o find_v such_o greet_v testimony_n to_o prove_v the_o apostolic_a authority_n of_o the_o creed_n so_o i_o do_v find_v that_o the_o holy_a father_n do_v high_o praise_v the_o excellency_n of_o it_o as_o of_o a_o work_n worthy_a of_o such_o divine_a architect_n s._n augustin_n call_v it_o symb._n aug._n ser_n 42._o the_o trad_a symb._n the_o comprehension_n &_o perfection_n of_o our_o faith_n it_o be_v simple_a say_v he_o short_a &_o full_a that_o its_o simplicity_n may_v serve_v the_o rudeness_n it_o be_v shortness_n the_o memory_n &_o its_o fullness_n the_o instruction_n of_o the_o hearer_n elsewhere_o he_o call_v it_o the_o compend_v of_o the_o scripture_n lib._n 1._o ad_fw-la catech._n pentecost_n id._n m_o ser_n in_o vigil_n pentecost_n and_o again_o he_o say_v this_o be_v a_o symbol_n brief_a in_o word_n but_o large_a in_o mystery_n for_o whatsoever_o be_v prefigure_v in_o the_o patriarch_n whatsoever_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o scripture_n or_o foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n etc._n etc._n be_v contain_v and_o brief_o confess_v in_o it_o and_o in_o his_o sermon_n above_o cite_v the_o traditione_n symboli_fw-la speak_v of_o the_o creed_n he_o say_v these_o be_v not_o humane_a word_n but_o heavenly_a mystery_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o most_o notable_a and_o efficacious_a be_v the_o word_n of_o rufinus_n to_o this_o purpose_n the_o apostle_n symb._n rufin_n in_o praef_n de_fw-fr expos_fw-fr symb._n say_v he_o be_v to_o part_v from_o one_o a_o other_o to_o preach_v they_o lay_v down_o this_o mark_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o agreement_n not_o as_o the_o child_n of_o no_n be_v to_o part_n from_o each_o other_o rear_v up_o a_o tower_n of_o brick_n and_o slime_n who_o top_n shall_v reach_v unto_o the_o heaven_n but_o build_v the_o fortress_n of_o faith_n of_o lively_a stone_n and_o heavenly_a pearl_n which_o shall_v stand_v steadfast_a against_o the_o face_n of_o the_o enemy_n which_o neither_o the_o wind_n shall_v shake_v nor_o flood_n subvert_v nor_o boisterous_a storm_n or_o tempest_n move_v they_o therefore_o be_v to_o separate_v build_v the_o tower_n of_o pride_n be_v deserve_o punish_v with_o the_o confusion_n of_o tongue_n that_o not_o one_o can_v understand_v the_o speech_n of_o his_o neighbour_n but_o these_o who_o build_v the_o tower_n of_o faith_n be_v endue_v with_o the_o skill_n and_o knowledge_n of_o all_o language_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o one_o may_v be_v the_o mark_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o other_o the_o monument_n of_o faith_n thus_o ruffinus_n last_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n do_v show_v the_o frequent_a laudable_a use_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n it_o be_v first_o teach_v and_o deliver_v unto_o those_o who_o desire_v baptism_n and_o it_o be_v require_v to_o be_v public_o say_v by_o they_o immediate_o before_o their_o baptism_n this_o custom_n as_o ruffinus_n show_v be_v careful_o observe_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n supra_fw-la ruffin_n ibid._n ut_fw-la supra_fw-la s._n augustin_n also_o do_v witness_n how_o the_o godfather_n do_v say_v it_o in_o name_n of_o the_o infant_n who_o they_o present_v to_o baptism_n and_o therefore_o he_o earnest_o exhort_v every_o christian_a when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o year_n of_o discretion_n to_o say_v frequent_o the_o apostolic_a creed_n which_o he_o profess_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o those_o who_o present_v he_o to_o baptism_n and_o call_v it_o the_o mirror_n of_o a_o christian_a render_v say_v he_o your_o symbol_n render_v it_o unto_o the_o lord_n 42._o aug._n homil_n 42._o be_v not_o weary_a to_o rehearse_v it_o the_o repetition_n of_o it_o be_v good_a lest_o forgetfulness_n creep_v on_o thou_o do_v not_o say_v i_o say_v it_o yesternight_o i_o say_v it_o to_o day_n i_o say_v it_o every_o day_n i_o have_v it_o well_o remember_v thy_o faith_n behold_v thyself_o let_v thy_o creed_n be_v a_o mirror_n unto_o thou_o there_o see_v thyself_o if_o thou_o believe_v all_o that_o thou_o confess_v thyself_o to_o believe_v and_o rejoice_v daily_o in_o thy_o faith_n let_v it_o be_v thy_o riches_n the_o daily_a apparel_n of_o thy_o soul_n do_v you_o not_o clothe_v yourself_o when_o you_o rise_v so_o by_o remember_v thy_o creed_n clothe_v thy_o soul_n lest_o peradventure_o forgetfulness_n make_v it_o naked_a s._n ambrose_n call_v it_o the_o seal_n of_o our_o heart_n which_o we_o ought_v daily_o to_o review_v and_o the_o watchword_n of_o a_o christian_n 4._o amb._n lib._n 3._o de_fw-la virginib_fw-la tom_fw-mi 4._o which_o shall_v be_v in_o readiness_n in_o all_o danger_n by_o all_o which_o irrefragable_a testimony_n the_o sacred_a authority_n great_a excellency_n and_o frequent_v laudable_a use_n both_o in_o public_a and_o private_a of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n do_v appear_v sufficient_o unto_o i_o so_o that_o i_o find_v for_o it_o the_o consent_n of_o people_n and_o nation_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n the_o martyr_n saint_n and_o christian_n of_o all_o age_n that_o be_v of_o the_o universal_a church_n the_o pillar_n &_o ground_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v the_o great_a assurance_n that_o can_v be_v have_v upon_o earth_n and_o therefore_o i_o rest_v full_o satisfy_v with_o they_o but_o i_o be_v much_o more_o confirm_v in_o this_o resolution_n when_o i_o understand_v by_o a_o serious_a conference_n with_o a_o friend_n that_o there_o be_v the_o same_o certainty_n for_o the_o creed_n that_o there_o be_v for_o the_o scripture_n to_o wit_n the_o tradition_n or_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n s._n augustin_n deliver_v clear_o this_o truth_n concern_v the_o scripture_n 5._o aug._n count_v epist_n fund_z c._n 5._o i_o will_v not_o have_v believe_v say_v he_o the_o euangel_n unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v move_v i_o etc._n etc._n and_o that_o authority_n be_v once_o weaken_v neither_o can_v i_o believe_v the_o euangel_n this_o testimony_n &_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v prove_v to_o i_o to_o be_v the_o most_o easy_a manifest_a and_o infallible_a ordinary_a way_n that_o can_v be_v have_v on_o earth_n to_o come_v unto_o the_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o what_o book_n be_v scripture_n yea_o it_o be_v clear_o prove_v to_o be_v the_o only_a way_n so_o that_o if_o once_o this_o testimony_n be_v weaken_v there_o be_v nothing_o leave_v but_o guessing_n &_o wander_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o blind_a man_n as_o experience_n do_v show_v in_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o lutheranist_n &_o the_o calvinist_n who_o agree_v in_o all_o their_o suppose_a way_n of_o know_v the_o scripture_n and_o yet_o can_v never_o agree_v in_o the_o same_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o of_o this_o matter_n we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v more_o fit_o hereafter_o in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o church_n if_o then_o the_o
conclude_v this_o point_n i_o find_v clear_o that_o the_o creed_n have_v be_v always_o hold_v to_o be_v &_o be_v apostolic_a that_o it_o be_v the_o foundation_n &_o perfect_a rule_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n that_o it_o be_v a_o work_n worthy_a of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n that_o it_o be_v such_o a_o strong_a &_o heavenly_a fabric_n that_o it_o can_v be_v overthrow_v by_o no_o storm_n nor_o tempest_n by_o no_o force_n nor_o violence_n and_o that_o it_o overcome_v all_o heresy_n that_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o say_v it_o public_o at_o baptism_n and_o often_o private_o and_o daily_o be_v most_o laudable_a and_o profitable_a to_o christian_a people_n and_o upon_o the_o other_o part_n i_o find_v that_o the_o presbyterian_o by_o deny_v the_o cred_a to_o be_v apostolic_a have_v deny_v the_o foundation_n &_o clear_a rule_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n &_o most_o unreasonable_o have_v wear_v out_o both_o the_o public_a &_o private_a use_n of_o it_o and_o that_o they_o complete_v their_o new_a raformation_n when_o they_o not_o only_o reject_v the_o creed_n but_o obtrude_v the_o covenant_n in_o place_n of_o it_o and_o last_o i_o find_v that_o as_o the_o presbyterian_o new_a doctrine_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v most_o erroneous_a and_o presumptuous_a so_o that_o all_o their_o endeavour_n have_v prove_v vain_a &_o frivolous_a for_o that_o fortress_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v build_v by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n of_o lively_a stone_n &_o heavenly_a pearl_n as_o ruffinus_n speak_v have_v hold_v out_o strong_a tempest_n than_o the_o presbyterian_o weak_a blast_n and_o therefore_o it_o still_o stand_v immovable_a whereas_o the_o babel_n of_o their_o covenant_n which_o they_o be_v so_o diligent_o build_v and_o upon_o which_o they_o can_v never_o get_v the_o capstone_n as_o they_o often_o regret_v have_v end_v in_o confusion_n and_o in_o a_o short_a space_n have_v come_v to_o ruin_v now_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v consider_v i_o refer_v myself_o to_o any_o man_n void_a of_o passion_n if_o i_o can_v reasonable_o much_o less_o christianly_o exchange_v the_o pearl_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n for_o the_o dross_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o covenant_n chap._n xi_o of_o the_o article_n of_o christ_n descent_n to_o hell_n pervert_v by_o the_o presbyterian_o after_o that_o the_o presbyterian_o have_v thus_o endeavour_v to_o shake_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n lest_o peradventure_o their_o small_a authority_n may_v not_o prevail_v against_o all_o christianity_n what_o they_o can_v not_o get_v effectuate_v by_o deny_v the_o letter_n they_o labour_v to_o perform_v by_o corrupt_v the_o sense_n and_o especial_o of_o that_o article_n fine_a short_a cotech_n w_n st_o in_o fine_a he_o descend_v into_o hell_n for_o in_o their_o new_a catechism_n they_o interline_v or_o put_v on_o the_o margin_n this_o gloss_n with_o it_o he_o descend_v into_o hell_n that_o be_v he_o continue_v in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o under_o the_o power_n of_o death_n till_o the_o three_o day_n i_o observe_v that_o although_o we_o have_v and_o say_v the_o word_n of_o the_o creed_n before_o the_o covenant_n begin_v yet_o we_o do_v not_o know_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o in_o this_o and_o some_o other_o article_n albeit_o as_o s._n augustin_n show_v it_o be_v make_v plain_a &_o short_a that_o it_o may_v serve_v the_o capacity_n understanding_n &_o memory_n of_o the_o simple_a for_o there_o be_v a_o great_a quarrel_v before_o these_o great_a trouble_n among_o some_o of_o the_o minister_n for_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o word_n he_o descend_v into_o hell_n some_o public_o teach_v that_o they_o behove_v to_o be_v literal_o understand_v of_o a_o real_a and_o local_a descent_n other_o of_o the_o preciser_n sort_n call_v that_o a_o papistical_a interpretation_n against_o which_o they_o do_v most_o sharp_o inveigh_v and_o teach_v according_a to_o calvin_n that_o the_o sense_n of_o they_o be_v that_o christ_n do_v suffer_v in_o his_o soul_n the_o horrible_a torment_n of_o a_o condemn_a and_o forsake_a man_n which_o gloss_n be_v call_v by_o the_o former_a minister_n a_o horrible_a blasphemy_n to_o come_v then_o to_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o this_o article_n about_o which_o there_o be_v such_o contrariety_n among_o the_o minister_n i_o have_v my_o recourse_n to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n &_o father_n and_o i_o find_v that_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n more_o clear_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o more_o unanimous_o avow_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n who_o brand_v those_o who_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o literal_o with_o the_o name_n of_o infidel_n and_o last_o i_o find_v that_o diverse_a gross_a way_n have_v be_v devise_v by_o the_o minister_n since_o their_o pretend_a reformation_n to_o pervert_v and_o obscure_v it_o and_o when_o the_o falsehood_n of_o one_o be_v discover_v they_o always_o find_v out_o a_o other_o but_o will_v never_o embrace_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n do_v show_v to_o every_o christien_n that_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o man_n salvatian_a to_o hold_v the_o word_n of_o the_o creed_n but_o it_o be_v necessary_a also_o to_o follow_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o this_o the_o holy_a father_n do_v teach_v who_o show_v likewise_o that_o as_o heretic_n ever_o endeavour_v to_o pervert_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o creed_n so_o the_o true_a church_n do_v ever_o retain_v &_o maintain_v it_o s._n cyril_n with_o the_o alexandrin_n synod_n write_v to_o this_o purpose_n to_o nestorius_n who_o pretend_v to_o believe_v the_o nicen_n creed_n &_o yet_o deny_v the_o bless_a virgin_n to_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o god_n 1_o cyril_n alex._n cum_fw-la syn._n alex._n epist_n 10._o ad_fw-la nestor_n aug._n tom_n 3._o de_fw-la fide_fw-la &_o symb_n c._n 1_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a say_v he_o that_o you_o profess_v with_o we_o the_o symbol_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n for_o you_o do_v not_o understand_v nor_o expound_v it_o right_o but_o rather_o perverse_o although_o you_o confess_v the_o word_n of_o it_o with_o your_o tongue_n s._n augustin_n also_o say_v to_o the_o like_a purpose_n under_o the_o few_o word_n contain_v in_o the_o symbol_n many_o heretic_n have_v endeavour_v to_o hide_v their_o poison_n to_o who_o the_o divine_a mercy_n have_v resist_v and_o do_v resist_v by_o spiritual_a man_n who_o have_v not_o only_o merit_v to_o believe_v and_o receive_v the_o catholic_a faith_n in_o these_o word_n but_o also_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o god_n to_o understand_v &_o know_v it_o so_o the_o presbyterian_o although_o they_o have_v deny_v the_o creed_n yet_o under_o the_o word_n of_o it_o they_o endeavour_v to_o hide_v their_o poison_n although_o the_o article_n of_o christ_n descent_n to_o hell_n be_v not_o in_o the_o creed_n which_o be_v a_o clear_a and_o easy_a rule_n of_o faith_n that_o aught_o to_o be_v plain_o and_o literal_o understand_v yet_o it_o be_v so_o clear_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v without_o wrest_v of_o it_o s._n peter_n in_o his_o first_o sermon_n do_v apply_v unto_o christ_n 10._o psal_n 15._o v._o 9_o 10._o a_o pprophecy_n of_o david_n in_o the_o 15_o psasme_n which_o say_v my_o heart_n have_v be_v glad_a &_o my_o tongue_n have_v rejoice_v my_o flesh_n also_o shall_v rest_v in_o hope_n for_o thou_o will_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o hell_n neither_o will_v thou_o suffer_v thy_o holy_a one_o to_o see_v corruption_n 2.30.31_o act_n 2.30.31_o after_o s._n peter_n have_v prove_v that_o this_o prophely_n can_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o prophet_n david_n he_o show_v that_o david_n mean_v of_o christ_n in_o these_o word_n whereas_o therefore_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n etc._n etc._n forseeing_a he_o speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n for_o neither_o be_v he_o leave_v in_o hell_n neither_o do_v his_o flesh_n see_v corruption_n there_o be_v both_o the_o old_a &_o new_a testament_n fot_o this_o truth_n the_o prophet_n david_n foretell_v and_o the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n expound_v and_o show_v the_o fulfil_n of_o it_o to_o wit_n that_o christ_n soul_n be_v not_o leave_v in_o hell_n neither_o do_v his_o flesh_n see_v corruption_n what_o can_v be_v reasonable_o more_o require_v by_o any_o christian_n 99_o aug._n epist_n ad_fw-la exod._n 99_o but_o let_v we_o hear_v s._n augustin_n so_o understand_v it_o that_o our_o lord_n say_v he_o be_v mortify_v in_o the_o flesh_n do_v go_v into_o hell_n be_v very_o certain_a for_o that_o prophecy_n which_o say_v thou_o will_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o hell_n can_v be_v contradict_v which_o lest_o any_o man_n shall_v presume_v to_o understand_v otherwise_o the_o same_o peter_n do_v expound_v it_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o he_o conclude_v in_o these_o word_n quis_fw-la ergo_fw-la nisi_fw-la
as_o flat_a blasphemy_n and_o yet_o calvin_n esteem'_v so_o much_o this_o blasphemous_a fancy_n that_o he_o make_v it_o the_o price_n of_o our_o redemption_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v nothing_o have_v be_v do_v sup_n cal_n lib._n 2_o instit_fw-la ut_fw-la sup_n if_o christ_n have_v only_o dye_v a_o corporal_a death_n but_o it_o be_v also_o requisite_a that_o he_o shall_v feel_v the_o severity_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o when_o this_o be_v object_v as_o a_o blasphemy_n by_o f._n campian_n whitaker_n do_v second_o &_o sustain_v it_o 18._o witak_n lib._n ●_o count_v dureum_fw-la sect_n 18._o say_v that_o calvin_n write_v most_o true_o that_o nothing_o have_v be_v do_v if_o jesus_n christ_n have_v only_o suffer_v a_o corporal_a death_n yea_o he_o call_v this_o a_o doctrine_n most_o full_a of_o comfort_n these_o doctrine_n be_v so_o fall_v against_o the_o scripture_n which_o show_v nothing_o more_o frequent_o and_o clear_o then_o that_o we_o be_v redeem_v by_o the_o blood_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o so_o absurd_a and_o blasphemous_a that_o we_o need_v spend_v no_o more_o time_n in_o refutation_n of_o they_o for_o they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_n with_o those_o of_o which_o s._n hierome_n speak_v when_o he_o say_v that_o to_o discover_v they_o be_v to_o vanquish_v they_o yea_o some_o protestant_o have_v write_v against_o they_o as_o doctor_n bilson_n b._n of_o winchester_n in_o his_o book_n 40._o bilson_n in_o apol._n prot._n tract_n 3._o sect_n 3._o num_fw-la 40._o which_o he_o entitle_v the_o full_a redemptein_a of_o mankind_n by_o the_o death_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o article_n that_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n etc._n etc._n but_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o gross_a absurdity_n of_o this_o sense_n invent_v by_o calvin_n yet_o it_o be_v general_o follow_v by_o the_o presbyterian_o and_o by_o many_o other_o protestant_n who_o deny_v the_o local_a descent_n of_o christ_n soul_n to_o hell_n for_o although_o it_o sound_v very_o ill_a yet_o it_o behoove_v to_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o presbyterian_o for_o want_v of_o a_o better_a until_o a_o new_a one_o more_o commodious_a be_v find_v out_o which_o now_o late_o have_v be_v perform_v by_o the_o new_a reformer_n of_o these_o time_n who_o see_v further_a and_o more_o clear_o then_o m._n calvin_n who_o although_o he_o be_v famous_a in_o his_o own_o generation_n and_o be_v repute_v to_o be_v a_o apostle_n send_v extraordinarly_a by_o god_n to_o reform_v the_o church_n yet_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o know_v his_o catechism_n nor_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o article_n of_o his_o creed_n but_o invent_v such_o a_o sense_n as_o some_o of_o his_o disciple_n have_v abandon_v it_o as_o false_a and_o other_o as_o blasphemous_a as_o beza_n in_o his_o version_n of_o the_o scripture_n turn_v hell_n into_o grave_n so_o he_o understand_v this_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n he_o descend_v into_o hell_n that_o be_v he_o descend_v into_o the_o grave_n which_o error_n together_o with_o the_o former_a coruption_n invent_v by_o m._n calvin_n a_o learned_a minister_n in_o edinburgh_n do_v public_o refute_v in_o divers_a sermon_n a_o little_a before_o the_o trouble_n for_o which_o he_o be_v much_o persecute_v by_o the_o puritan_n he_o show_v that_o bezas_n corruption_n make_v a_o gross_a tautology_n in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n or_o it_o make_v a_o explication_n more_o obscure_a than_o the_o thing_n it_o explain_v the_o tautology_n will_v be_v very_o gross_a to_o say_v crucify_a dead_a and_o bury_v he_o descend_v into_o the_o grave_n that_o will_v be_v twice_o bury_v or_o if_o you_o make_v descend_v into_o hell_n the_o explication_n of_o burial_n that_o be_v a_o rare_a commentary_n to_o explicate_v a_o matter_n which_o be_v clear_a and_o needs_o no_o commentary_n by_o that_o which_o be_v more_o obscure_a and_o can_v yet_o be_v right_o understand_v by_o protestant_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o dissension_n the_o same_o minister_n show_v that_o both_o these_o vice_n be_v against_o the_o end_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n who_o make_v it_o short_a and_o plain_a that_o it_o may_v serve_v the_o capacity_n of_o all_o man_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v free_a of_o idle_a tautology_n and_o obscure_a commentary_n but_o at_o that_o time_n this_o minister_n do_v not_o know_v that_o the_o presbyterian_o be_v to_o deny_v the_o creed_n to_o have_v be_v compose_v by_o the_o apostle_n by_o which_o his_o argument_n be_v answer_v although_o by_o fall_v into_o grosser_n absurdity_n the_o three_o sense_n devise_v by_o the_o presbyterian_o at_o westminster_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o like_a inconvenience_n that_o be_v both_o of_o tautology_n and_o obscure_a gloss_n for_o they_o say_v by_o that_o article_n he_o descend_v into_o hell_n be_v understand_v that_o he_o continue_v in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o under_o the_o power_n of_o death_n till_o the_o three_o day_n for_o first_o it_o will_v be_v a_o tautology_n to_o say_v dead_a and_o bury_v and_o then_o repeat_v again_o he_o remain_v dead_a or_o in_o the_o power_n of_o death_n that_o be_v sufficient_o know_v by_o the_o word_n that_o follow_v to_o wit_n the_o three_o day_n he_o arise_v from_o the_o dead_a for_o he_o behove_v to_o remain_v dead_a so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v dead_a and_o he_o be_v dead_a till_o the_o three_o day_n that_o he_o arise_v from_o the_o dead_a so_o that_o the_o addition_n of_o he_o descend_v into_o hell_n understand_v in_o the_o minister_n new_a coin_a sense_n will_v not_o be_v only_o superfluous_a but_o also_o ridiculous_a then_o if_o they_o will_v make_v christ_n descent_n to_o hell_n a_o explication_n of_o christ_n remain_v dead_a the_o commentary_n will_v be_v more_o obscure_a than_o the_o text_n which_o be_v clear_a of_o itself_o how_o will_v the_o presbyterian_o be_v please_v if_o one_o will_v say_v of_o john_n calvin_n or_o knox_n or_o of_o their_o late_a apostle_n m._n henderson_n that_o they_o be_v dead_a bury_v &_o descend_v into_o hell_n and_o if_o this_o man_n be_v accuse_v before_o the_o presbytery_n will_v bring_v in_o his_o own_o defence_n the_o minister_n new_a commentary_n that_o he_o mean_v only_o by_o these_o word_n that_o they_o remain_v in_o the_o power_n &_o state_n of_o death_n because_o they_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a i_o be_o moral_o persuade_v what_o ever_o commentary_n can_v be_v bring_v either_o their_o own_o or_o any_o other_o the_o presbyterian_o will_v be_v ill_o please_v with_o such_o a_o text_n and_o will_v think_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o have_v say_v that_o they_o be_v dead_a and_o bury_v without_o this_o addition_n they_o descend_v into_o hell_n but_o of_o all_o the_o exposition_n that_o ever_o i_o find_v on_o this_o article_n that_o of_o the_o late_a protestant_a bishop_n usher_n be_v the_o rare_a which_o d._n vane_n speak_v of_o the_o minister_n juggling_n describe_v thus_o edit_fw-la d._n vane_n lose_v sheep_n pag._n 243_o 1._o edit_fw-la o_o what_o serpentine_a wrigling_n and_o wind_n to_o escape_v the_o assaulter_n do_v they_o make_v o_o what_o perverse_a ridiculous_a and_o contradict_a answer_n and_o evasion_n do_v some_o of_o they_o make_v in_o which_o they_o show_v at_o once_o both_o much_o wit_n and_o much_o folly_n for_o fool_n can_v not_o speak_v as_o they_o do_v and_o wise_a man_n will_v not_o in_o so_o much_o that_o b._n usher_n primate_n of_o armagh_n a_o very_a learned_a man_n to_o avoid_v the_o confession_n of_o christ_n descent_n into_o hell_n according_a to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n in_o the_o plain_a sense_n thereof_o do_v so_o turn_v it_o and_o wind_n it_o that_o he_o make_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n he_o descend_v into_o hell_n to_o be_v he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n to_o such_o pitiful_a refuge_n do_v the_o weakness_n of_o a_o bad_a cause_n drive_v they_o etc._n etc._n thus_o he_o and_o so_o by_o this_o bishop_n commentary_n for_o descend_v we_o have_v ascend_v and_o for_o hell_n heaven_n but_o all_o these_o sense_n be_v nowayes_o satisfactory_a the_o presbyterian_o take_v the_o cleanly_a &_o easy_a way_n to_o deny_v the_o creed_n itself_o to_o be_v apostolic_a that_o so_o man_n may_v not_o care_n much_o or_o take_v great_a notice_n of_o the_o sense_n when_o all_o authority_n be_v take_v from_o the_o text_n that_o shift_n may_v in_o some_o manner_n serve_v their_o turn_n if_o this_o truth_n be_v not_o as_o express_o in_o the_o scripture_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o creed_n now_o i_o will_v inquire_v at_o any_o man_n of_o conscience_n or_o ordinary_a discretion_n who_o will_v consider_v impartial_o these_o thing_n what_o i_o shall_v do_v in_o this_o case_n shall_v i_o believe_v the_o presbyterian_o who_o have_v
that_o for_o this_o one_o testimony_n which_o say_v that_o our_o sin_n be_v cover_v they_o shall_v deny_v so_o many_o which_o show_v that_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o and_o will_v not_o rather_o confess_v with_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o be_v both_o cover_v and_o take_v away_o s._n augustin_n show_v excellent_o on_o this_o place_n how_o god_n do_v both_o for_o compare_v he_o to_o a_o surgeon_n or_o physician_n 31._o aug._n ●narr_n in_o ps_n 31._o he_o say_v that_o god_n do_v so_o cover_v the_o wound_n with_o a_o plaster_n that_o he_o cure_v it_o and_o take_v it_o away_o calvin_n &_o his_o follower_n make_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o very_a imperfect_a spiritual_a physician_n who_o can_v neither_o heal_v the_o sick_a nor_o cure_v the_o wound_a soul_n but_o only_o can_v cast_v a_o cover_n upon_o they_o such_o a_o physician_n of_o the_o body_n who_o can_v do_v nothing_o but_o throw_v his_o cloak_n upon_o the_o sick_a or_o wound_v and_o neither_o be_v able_a to_o take_v away_o the_o sickness_n or_o wound_n will_v be_v in_o small_a esteem_n and_o little_o employ_v the_o second_o gross_a error_n of_o calvin_n which_o deny_v inherent_a justice_n be_v sufficient_o above_o refute_v where_o it_o be_v show_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n &_o father_n that_o we_o be_v quicken_v by_o christ_n and_o that_o justice_n or_o grace_n proceed_v from_o the_o justice_n of_o christ_n the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o our_o justice_n be_v the_o spiritual_a life_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o quicken_v it_o and_o therefore_o must_v be_v internal_a and_o inherent_a within_o us._n for_o as_o one_o can_v live_v natural_o unless_o he_o have_v internal_a life_n within_o he_o so_o neither_o can_v one_o live_v spiritual_o by_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v without_o he_o but_o he_o must_v necessary_o have_v the_o life_n of_o grace_n or_o justice_n within_o he_o this_o truth_n be_v so_o strong_a that_o calvin_n do_v sometime_o acknowledge_v it_o for_o he_o say_v 316._o cal._n lib._n the_o refrom_o eccl._n p._n 316._o that_o we_o be_v never_o reconcile_v to_o god_n but_o we_o be_v also_o gift_v with_o inherent_a justice_n but_o at_o other_o time_n he_o frequent_o oppose_v it_o affirm_v that_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o just_a person_n be_v nothing_o inward_o but_o filthy_a sinner_n and_o that_o all_o their_o justice_n consist_v only_o in_o the_o external_a justice_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v impute_v to_o they_o and_o with_o which_o their_o sin_n and_o filthynesse_n be_v cover_v 23.27_o math._n 23.27_o so_o that_o calve_v just_a man_n be_v not_o unfit_o by_o some_o compare_v to_o white_v sepulcher_n to_o which_o our_o saviour_n compare_v the_o pharisee_n that_o outward_o appear_v unto_o man_n beautiful_a but_o within_o be_v full_a of_o dead_a man_n bone_n &_o all_o filthiness_n so_o the_o presbyterian_o will_v appear_v beautiful_a outward_o by_o the_o justice_n of_o christ_n but_o inward_o they_o be_v full_a of_o filthiness_n &_o iniquity_n they_o be_v also_o like_o wolf_n in_o sheep_n clothing_n who_o have_v a_o external_a show_n of_o meekness_n &_o justice_n but_o inward_o be_v ravenous_a creature_n but_o as_o sheep_n clothing_n do_v not_o make_v a_o wolf_n to_o become_v a_o lamb_n so_o neither_o will_v the_o external_a justice_n of_o christ_n that_o innocent_a lamb_n with_o which_o a_o sinner_n will_v clothe_v himself_o outward_o and_o yet_o remain_v still_o in_o his_o sin_n make_v he_o a_o saint_n 7._o john_n e_o ist_fw-mi 1●hap_n ●hap_z 3._o v._o 7._o s._n john_n give_v a_o serious_a warning_n to_o this_o purpose_n little_a child_n say_v he_o let_v no_o man_n seduce_v you_o he_o that_o do_v justice_n be_v just_a even_o as_o he_o also_o that_o be_v christ_n be_v just_a therefore_o they_o be_v seduce_v who_o think_v to_o be_v just_a and_o yet_o will_v do_v no_o justice_n as_o christ_n do_v the_o three_o error_n to_o wit_n that_o faith_n alone_o do_v justify_v be_v also_o above_o refute_v for_o 1._o it_o have_v be_v show_v not_o to_o be_v in_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o the_o presbytetians_n make_v it_o very_o unreasonable_o &_o against_o their_o own_o principle_n the_o principal_a article_n of_o their_o religion_n 2._o it_o be_v not_o only_o not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o scripture_n but_o it_o be_v express_o word_n by_o word_n against_o scripture_n as_o have_v be_v see_v out_o of_o s._n james._n therefore_o the_o presbyterian_o brag_n of_o great_a advantage_n in_o this_o point_n be_v very_o false_a and_o groundless_a 3._o it_o be_v also_o against_o the_o holy_a father_n who_o condemn_v it_o as_o we_o have_v see_v in_o some_o ancient_a heretic_n yea_o s._n augustin_n do_v affirm_v that_o because_o it_o have_v rise_v in_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o apostle_n by_o misinterpret_v the_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n the_o other_o apostle_n as_o s._n peter_n s._n james_n &_o s._n john_n do_v direct_v the_o intention_n of_o their_o epistle_n and_o write_v most_o earnest_o to_o root_v out_o that_o error_n from_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n and_o s._n paul_n also_o do_v express_v himself_o sufficient_o against_o this_o error_n when_o he_o say_v that_o albeit_o he_o have_v all_o faith_n so_o that_o he_o can_v remove_v mountain_n if_o he_o have_v not_o charity_n 13.13_o 1._o cor._n 13.13_o which_o he_o call_v great_a and_o more_o excellent_a than_o faith_n and_o hope_n he_o will_v be_v nothing_o and_o his_o faith_n will_v profit_v he_o nothing_o whence_o s._n augustin_n say_v that_o it_o be_v charity_n 108._o aug._n lib._n 15._o de_fw-fr trin._n cap._n 27._o leo_fw-la serm_n de_fw-fr collect_v shel_n p._n 108._o 108._o which_o make_v all_o virtue_n profitable_a and_o that_o faith_n may_v be_v present_a but_o it_o can_v profit_v without_o charity_n and_o s._n leo_n say_v that_o charity_n quicken_v faith_n itself_o by_o which_o the_o just_a man_n live_v yea_o m._n shelford_n the_o protestant_a minister_n above_o cite_v say_v express_o that_o charity_n be_v the_o most_o precious_a grace_n of_o god_n and_o be_v the_o great_a mean_n &_o instrument_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o that_o he_o meaning_n calvin_n who_o prefer_v faith_n before_o charity_n in_o our_o justification_n will_v elude_v s._n paul_n demonstration_n but_o there_o be_v another_o part_n or_o branch_n of_o this_o three_o error_n much_o more_o dangerous_a than_o the_o former_a for_o as_o they_o teach_v that_o faith_n alone_o do_v justify_v and_o yet_o they_o require_v with_o it_o charity_n &_o other_o virtue_n which_o make_v the_o difference_n to_o be_v more_o nominal_a than_o real_a so_o they_o teach_v that_o this_o justify_n faith_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o sure_a persuasion_n that_o every_o one_o ought_v to_o have_v of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o his_o sin_n for_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o he_o be_v just_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o special_a faith_n which_o they_o say_v be_v only_o give_v to_o the_o elect_a and_o these_o who_o once_o have_v it_o can_v never_o fall_v from_o it_o and_o they_o be_v sure_a of_o their_o election_n &_o predestination_n in_o this_o matter_n the_o presbyterian_o differ_v substantial_o from_o the_o catholic_n who_o require_v also_o faith_n to_o justification_n but_o of_o a_o far_o different_a nature_n from_o this_o of_o calvin_n which_o they_o esteem_v not_o to_o be_v faith_n but_o rather_o a_o fanatical_a fancy_n and_o high_a presumption_n against_o which_o i_o find_v some_o solid_a reason_n which_o i_o will_v brief_o touch_v 1._o no_o man_n ought_v to_o believe_v any_o thing_n as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o that_o which_o god_n have_v reveal_v but_o god_n have_v not_o reveal_v that_o every_o man_n sin_n be_v forgive_v he_o therefore_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v it_o &_o much_o less_o although_o he_o believe_v it_o be_v he_o iustify_v by_o it_o 2._o there_o be_v neither_o precept_n nor_o example_n in_o the_o whole_a scripture_n of_o such_o a_o special_a justify_n faith_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v 3._o it_o be_v far_o different_a from_o the_o faith_n of_o abraham_n the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a by_o which_o he_o be_v iustify_v which_o faith_n the_o apostle_n in_o the_o same_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n do_v high_o extol_v for_o he_o be_v iustify_v by_o believe_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n which_o be_v reveal_v to_o he_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o father_n of_o many_o nation_n and_o that_o his_o seed_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o star_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n this_o be_v the_o faith_n which_o the_o christian_n of_o all_o age_n ever_o require_v before_o luther_n &_o calvin_n arise_v to_o believe_v what_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o wit_n the_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n and_o the_o other_o matter_n contain_v in_o scripture_n accorord_v to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n if_o thou_o
that_o themselves_o do_v acknowledge_v in_o end_n the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n but_o to_o know_v how_o they_o be_v necessary_a either_o as_o cause_n or_o condition_n be_v not_o a_o necessary_a curiosity_n whereof_o few_o be_v capable_a and_o without_o which_o many_o have_v go_v to_o heaven_n and_o so_o now_o i_o proceed_v to_o the_o trial_n of_o our_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n chap._n xviii_o of_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o christian_a sacrament_n and_o particular_o how_o they_o confer_v grace_n which_o be_v deny_v by_o the_o presbyterian_o as_o i_o know_v the_o christian_a religion_n to_o be_v the_o most_o excellent_a of_o all_o true_a religion_n that_o ever_o have_v be_v whether_o we_o consider_v that_o which_o be_v under_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n or_o the_o other_o which_o be_v under_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n so_o i_o just_o conceive_v that_o it_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o god_n goodness_n and_o wisdom_n to_o adorn_v and_o enrich_v it_o with_o most_o excellent_a sacrament_n for_o since_o no_o religion_n whether_o true_a or_o false_a can_v be_v without_o some_o sensible_a sign_n 22._o aug._n lib._n 19_o cont_n faust_n cap._n 22._o as_o s._n augustin_n have_v observe_v the_o christian_a religion_n which_o be_v not_o only_o the_o true_a but_o also_o the_o most_o perfect_a religion_n to_o which_o the_o former_a two_o serve_v as_o preparation_n must_v also_o have_v the_o most_o perfect_a and_o efficacious_a sacrament_n and_o so_o i_o find_v the_o same_o s._n augustin_n extol_v the_o perfection_n of_o the_o christian_a sacrament_n above_o these_o of_o the_o ancient_a law_n 13._o aug._n lib._n 3._o the_o doct_n christ_n c._n 19_o aug._n count_v faust_n lib._n 19_o c._n 13._o our_o lord_n say_v he_o and_o the_o apostolical_a discipline_n have_v deliver_v some_o few_o sacrament_n for_o many_o and_o these_o most_o easy_a to_o be_v do_v most_o magnificent_a for_o signification_n and_o most_o pure_a to_o be_v observe_v and_o elsewhere_o he_o say_v the_o sacramenss_n be_v change_v they_o be_v make_v easy_a few_o holsom_a happy_a now_o the_o principal_a perfection_n of_o the_o christian_a sacrament_n be_v general_o believe_v to_o consist_v in_o this_o that_o god_n by_o they_o do_v confer_v grace_n unto_o our_o soul_n which_o truth_n be_v so_o engraft_a in_o the_o heart_n of_o christian_n that_o i_o know_v diverse_a protestant_n can_v not_o be_v at_o first_o persuade_v that_o luther_n or_o calvin_n or_o that_o their_o church_n teach_v the_o contrary_a and._n when_o that_o be_v sufficient_o manifest_v to_o they_o they_o be_v much_o scandalize_v at_o it_o in_o so_o much_o that_o some_o of_o they_o do_v say_v if_o the_o sacrament_n do_v not_o confer_v grace_n and_o baptism_n do_v not_o take_v away_o original_a sin_n for_o what_o use_v serve_v the_o sacrament_n for_o what_o end_n be_v they_o ordain_v wherefore_o be_v thus_o stir_v up_o to_o try_v this_o question_n i_o find_v in_o end_n that_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n which_o teach_v that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n do_v confer_v grace_n be_v conformable_a to_o the_o divine_a scripture_n that_o it_o be_v express_o believe_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o do_v due_o exalt_v the_o perfection_n of_o the_o christian_a sacrament_n whereas_o the_o presbyterian_o doctrine_n which_o deny_v the_o sacrament_n to_o confer_v grace_n be_v not_o only_o false_a against_o the_o scripture_n but_o be_v also_o condemn_v as_o a_o ancient_a heresy_n by_o the_o holy_a father_n that_o it_o undervalue_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o christian_a sacrament_n and_o be_v so_o absurd_a that_o diverse_a famous_a protestant_n have_v abandon_v that_o opinion_n albeit_o it_o be_v teach_v both_o by_o luther_n &_o calvin_n and_o in_o this_o point_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o catholic_n all_o which_o thing_n for_o brevity_n sake_n i_o will_v only_o touch_v of_o baptism_n s._n john_n say_v to_o the_o jew_n math._n 3.11_o math._n i_o indeed_o baptize_v you_o in_o water_n but_o he_o who_o come_v after_o i_o shall_v baptize_v you_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o fire_n ananias_n say_v to_o s._n paul_n be_v baptize_v &_o wash_v away_o thy_o sin_n 5.26_o act_n 22.16_o titus_n 3.5_o eph_n s_o 5.26_o s._n paul_n call_v also_o baptism_n the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n by_o which_o we_o be_v save_v the_o same_o apostle_n say_v that_o christ_n have_v sanctify_v his_o church_n by_o the_o laver_n of_o water_n in_o the_o word_n of_o life_n by_o which_o testimony_n albeit_o we_o speak_v nothing_o of_o many_o other_o it_o appear_v sufficient_o clear_a to_o i_o since_o we_o be_v say_v to_o have_v our_o sin_n wash_v away_o by_o baptism_n to_o be_v sanctify_v to_o be_v bear_v of_o new_a again_o that_o by_o it_o we_o receive_v also_o grace_n without_o which_o these_o thing_n can_v not_o be_v verify_v and_o perform_v the_o like_a be_v also_o affirm_v of_o the_o eucharist_n of_o which_o our_o saviour_n say_v if_o any_o man_n eat_v of_o this_o bread_n 6.51.54_o john_n 6.51.54_o he_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o and_o again_o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n have_v everlasting_a life_n now_o this_o everlasting_a life_n be_v no_o otherwise_o have_v here_o but_o by_o receive_v grace_n which_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o glory_n and_o of_o eternal_a life_n &_o happiness_n therefore_o these_o two_o sacrament_n which_o be_v all_o that_o the_o presbyterian_o admit_v do_v confer_v grace_n by_o the_o virtue_n &_o institution_n of_o christ_n what_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o this_o point_n it_o be_v so_o clear_a that_o calvin_n himself_o and_o other_o chief_a protestant_n do_v acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v the_o same_o which_o be_v now_o believe_v by_o the_o catholic_n against_o their_o doctrine_n 26._o cal._n lib._n 4._o instit_fw-la cap._n 14._o sect_n 14._o &_o 26._o for._n calvin_n confess_v that_o with_o great_a consent_n it_o be_v teach_v and_o believe_v for_o many_o age_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n do_v confer_v grace_n if_o they_o be_v not_o hinder_v by_o mortal_a sin_n which_o albeit_o he_o call_v a_o pernicious_a and_o pestilentious_a opinion_n and_o allege_v that_o it_o draw_v man_n from_o god_n to_o rest_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o corporal_a thing_n and_o not_o in_o god_n himself_o yet_o he_o confess_v also_o that_o it_o be_v teach_v by_o s._n augustin_n &_o the_o holy_a father_n who_o he_o strive_v to_o excuse_v by_o say_v that_o in_o their_o immoderate_a praise_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 299._o cent._n 2._o c._n 4._o &_o cent_n 3._o c_o 4._o muscul_fw-la in_o loc_n come_v p._n 299._o they_o use_v hyperbolical_a speech_n the_o lutheran_n centurist_n do_v ascribe_v the_o same_o doctrine_n as_o a_o error_n to_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n as_o to_o s._n clement_n justin_n cyprian_n and_o other_o musculus_fw-la say_v plain_o that_o augustin_n do_v rash_o affirm_v that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n confer_v grace_n these_o open_a confession_n shall_v save_v our_o pain_n of_o cite_v the_o father_n testimony_n and_o that_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n do_v manifest_v the_o perfection_n of_o the_o christian_a sacrament_n it_o be_v so_o clear_a of_o itself_o that_o it_o need_v no_o illustration_n upon_o this_o consideration_n s._n augustin_n joan._n aug._n tract_n 80._o in_o joan._n admire_v the_o wonderful_a effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n cry_v out_o vnde_fw-la tanta_fw-la virtus_fw-la aquae_fw-la ut_fw-la corpus_fw-la tangat_fw-la &_o cor_fw-la abluat_fw-la whence_o come_v say_v he_o so_o great_a virtue_n to_o the_o water_n that_o it_o touch_v the_o body_n and_o cleanse_v the_o soul_n where_o he_o ascribe_v this_o wonderful_a effect_n to_o the_o goodness_n &_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n which_o show_v also_o that_o his_o speech_n be_v not_o hyperbolical_a as_o calvin_n false_o pretend_v thus_o much_o brief_o to_o show_v that_o i_o find_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n to_o be_v conform_v to_o the_o scripture_n &_o holy_a father_n and_o to_o manifest_v the_o perfection_n of_o the_o christian_a sacrament_n and_o therefore_o calve_v opinion_n which_o be_v just_a contrary_n must_v needs_o be_v against_o all_o these_o he_o himself_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v against_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o consequent_o it_o can_v be_v conform_a to_o the_o scripture_n whereon_o they_o found_v their_o faith_n and_o not_o upon_o humane_a imagination_n that_o it_o take_v away_o a_o great_a perfection_n from_o the_o sacrament_n deny_v they_o to_o confer_v grace_n be_v so_o evident_a that_o it_o need_v no_o proof_n calvin_n see_v this_o so_o clear_o that_o he_o pretend_v the_o farher_n use_v immoderate_a praise_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o this_o virtue_n which_o the_o catholic_n do_v ascribe_v to_o the_o sacrament_n make_v people_n to_o trust_v more_o in_o creature_n they_o in_o god_n himself_o but_o as_o i_o find_v
etc._n and_o be_v turn_v unto_o vain_a opinion_n in_o which_o nothing_o be_v solid_a nothing_o stable_a that_o can_v satisfy_v the_o mind_n therefore_o he_o strive_v to_o satiat_fw-la himself_o daily_o with_o new_a opinion_n and_o idle_a invention_n but_o all_o in_o vain_a for_o these_o be_v nothing_o but_o husk_n which_o leave_v the_o belly_n empty_a there_o be_v no_o remedy_n for_o he_o but_o to_o return_v with_o the_o prodigal_a child_n unto_o his_o father_n house_n where_o he_o will_v be_v receive_v with_o joy_n and_o feast_v with_o the_o bread_n of_o angel_n but_o say_v the_o catholic_a to_o make_v a_o general_a reflection_n upon_o all_o that_o have_v pass_v under_o this_o trial_n do_v you_o not_o now_o clear_o see_v how_o false_o these_o reformer_n pretend_v always_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v for_o they_o when_o you_o have_v find_v the_o scripture_n so_o express_o against_o they_o in_o all_o these_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n already_o examine_v and_o which_o be_v very_o considerable_a have_v you_o not_o see_v these_o scripture_n to_o be_v so_o understand_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n in_o the_o pure_a and_o primitive_a time_n as_o they_o be_v now_o understand_v by_o the_o roman_a catholic_n do_v you_o not_o now_o perceive_v how_o heresy_n like_o a_o strumpet_n fard_v herself_o with_o the_o colour_n of_o the_o divin_fw-fr scripture_n by_o which_o feign_v and_o false_a beauty_n she_o allure_v and_o deceive_v many_o but_o so_o soon_o as_o she_o be_v bring_v near_o the_o fire_n of_o trial_n how_o her_o farthing_n melt_v &_o fall_v away_o and_o her_o own_o ugliness_n appear_v among_o heretic_n say_v s._n augustin_n 5._o aug._n count_v epist_n fund_z c._n 1._o joseph_n lib._n 5_o de_fw-la bello_fw-la judaico_fw-la c._n 5._o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o promise_n of_o truth_n a_o mere_a show_n or_o pretext_n of_o it_o no_o performance_n their_o doctrine_n be_v like_o the_o fruit_n of_o sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n which_o as_o josephus_n testify_v have_v a_o specious_a show_n and_o appear_v pleasant_a unto_o the_o eye_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v touch_v fall_v into_o ash_n so_o true_o be_v all_o heretical_a opinion_n they_o be_v give_v out_o for_o the_o fruit_n of_o pure_a scripture_n they_o appear_v very_o specious_a and_o pleasant_a but_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v try_v diligent_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o be_v touch_v as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o finger_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n they_o present_o evanish_v and_o nothing_o remain_v but_o the_o flamme_n of_o heretical_a dissension_n like_o the_o smoke_n of_o sodom_n &_o gomorrha_n as_o a_o testimony_n of_o the_o divin_fw-fr judgement_n upon_o they_o have_v you_o not_o now_o see_v that_o these_o two_o pretend_a scottish_a reformation_n have_v between_o they_o complete_v the_o hydious_a work_n of_o desolation_n and_o destroy_v the_o 4_o principal_a pillar_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o that_o as_o the_o late_a have_v take_v away_o two_o to_o wit_n the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o the_o apostle_n creed_n so_o the_o first_o have_v take_v away_o in_o effect_n the_o other_o two_o to_o wit_n the_o divin_fw-fr commandment_n and_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o so_o the_o presbyterian_o hay_n overturn_v what_o their_o predecessor_n leave_v untouched_a in_o a_o word_n they_o may_v be_v brief_o describe_v thus_o they_o have_v a_o creed_n from_o the_o apostle_n which_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v they_o have_v a_o prayer_n from_o christ_n which_o they_o do_v not_o say_v they_o have_v commandment_n from_o god_n which_o they_o profess_v they_o will_v not_o keep_v and_o the_o two_o sacrament_n of_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n which_o they_o have_v only_o leave_v to_o themselves_o they_o have_v make_v altogether_o graceless_a &_o almost_o useless_a and_o beside_o all_o this_o they_o have_v rob_v the_o holy_a trinity_n of_o glory_n and_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostolic_a government_n together_o with_o all_o order_n &_o decency_n to_o speak_v nothing_o of_o their_o other_o small_a prank_n therefore_o i_o be_o now_o confident_a that_o you_o have_v find_v what_o i_o promise_v at_o the_o beginning_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o first_o pretend_v reformation_n be_v no_o better_o ground_v than_o the_o last_o and_o that_o the_o end_n of_o both_o have_v be_v total_a desolation_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o chief_a pillar_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n whereas_o upon_o the_o contrary_a you_o have_v see_v the_o catholic_a religion_n which_o you_o have_v hear_v so_o often_o calumniate_v with_o strong_a and_o shameless_a cry_n to_o be_v in_o all_o these_o principal_a point_n conform_v to_o the_o scripture_n and_o holy_a father_n and_o to_o the_o primitive_a church_n thus_o he_o as_o i_o be_v so_o clear_o convince_v in_o all_o these_o particular_n that_o i_o behove_v to_o renounce_v both_o knowledge_n &_o conscience_n if_o i_o will_v deny_v they_o so_o i_o do_v ingenuos_o confess_v to_o he_o my_o satisfaction_n and_o withal_o i_o promise_v if_o i_o can_v find_v the_o like_a evidence_n for_o the_o catholic_n in_o all_o the_o other_o controversy_n that_o i_o will_v by_o god_n grace_n render_v myself_o a_o roman_a catholic_n to_o which_o he_o answer_v that_o the_o trial_n of_o all_o the_o particular_a doctrine_n in_o controversy_n after_o the_o former_a manner_n be_v a_o long_a laborious_a md_o needless_a way_n and_o that_o god_n have_v appoint_v more_o easy_a and_o short_a mean_n to_o come_v unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n or_o else_o what_o will_v become_v of_o those_o who_o be_v not_o capable_a to_o make_v such_o trial_n therefore_o he_o will_v undertake_v to_o prove_v short_o by_o a_o clear_a undeniable_a principle_n and_o grant_v by_o all_o protestant_n the_o protestant_a religion_n &_o their_o whole_a church_n to_o be_v false_a and_o by_o the_o same_o principle_n to_o show_v clear_o the_o present_a catholic_a church_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n establish_v by_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n and_o to_o have_v continue_v still_o in_o their_o doctrine_n without_o any_o variation_n and_o so_o with_o some_o confidence_n arise_v from_o my_o former_a experience_n i_o prepare_v myself_o to_o receive_v this_o new_a instruction_n chap._n xxiii_o that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v perpetual_a and_o must_v endure_v without_o interruption_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o principle_n say_v my_o catholic_a friend_n whereby_o i_o will_v demonstrate_v the_o protestant_a church_n not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v so_o evident_a and_o convincent_fw-la that_o as_o nothing_o be_v more_o express_o in_o scripture_n so_o nothing_o be_v more_o free_o grant_v by_o luther_n &_o calvin_n &_o general_o by_o all_o learned_a protestant_n and_o this_o principle_n be_v the_o perpetuity_n of_o christ_n church_n or_o that_o christ_n must_v have_v a_o church_n which_o have_v endure_v from_o his_o ascension_n until_o this_o time_n &_o shall_v endure_v from_o this_o until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n before_o i_o proceed_v further_o i_o will_v first_o manifest_v unto_o you_o the_o strength_n of_o this_o truth_n by_o the_o scripture_n father_n by_o protestant_n and_o their_o reason_n the_o passage_n of_o scripture_n for_o this_o truth_n be_v many_o but_o i_o shall_v content_v myself_o with_o some_o few_o which_o may_v serve_v for_o your_o satisfaction_n the_o first_o do_v concern_v the_o eternal_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n by_o which_o all_o man_n understand_v his_o church_n of_o this_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n say_v in_o the_o day_n of_o these_o king_n 2.44_o daniel_n 2.44_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n shall_v set_v up_o a_o kingdom_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v destroy_v etc._n etc._n it_o shall_v break_v in_o piece_n all_o these_o kingdom_n and_o it_o shall_v stand_v for_o ever_o the_o angel_n gabriel_n speak_v of_o the_o same_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n say_v and_o of_o his_o kingdom_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n 1.33_o luke_n 1.33_o calvin_n prove_v by_o these_o place_n and_o other_o which_o speak_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n the_o perpetuity_n of_o of_o his_o church_n against_o servetus_n so_o do_v also_o beza_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o holland_n if_o then_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v perpetual_a there_o must_v always_o be_v some_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v their_o king_n the_o second_o passage_n of_o scripture_n contain_v christ_n promise_n to_o his_o church_n 16.18_o math._n 16.18_o and_o the_o governor_n of_o it_o upon_o this_o rock_n say_v he_o will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o by_o this_o place_n s._n augustin_n prove_v both_o the_o perpetuity_n 8_o auge_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr symb._n ad_fw-la catech_n c._n 8_o and_o invincibility_n of_o
be_v so_o abominable_a the_o other_o be_v no_o less_o detestable_a s._n augustin_n who_o censure_v so_o heavy_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o donatist_n who_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n have_v perish_v every_o where_o except_o only_o among_o themselves_o as_o if_o he_o have_v foresee_v this_o presbyterian_a shift_n which_o pretend_v the_o church_n have_v not_o perrish_v but_o be_v invisible_a write_v thus_o against_o it_o 16._o aug._n the_o pastor_n c._n 16._o some_o one_o may_v say_v it_o may_v be_v god_n have_v other_o sheep_n but_o i_o know_v not_o where_o of_o which_o he_o take_v care_n but_o i_o know_v they_o not_o o_o how_o absurd_a be_v he_o unto_o humane_a sense_n who_o imagine_v such_o thing_n we_o have_v see_v how_o this_o opinion_n be_v against_o the_o scripture_n &_o father_n and_o now_o in_o s._n augustins_n judgement_n it_o be_v against_o sense_n we_o shall_v see_v present_o how_o it_o be_v against_o reason_n and_o famous_a protestant_n all_o man_n ordinary_o agree_v in_o this_o general_a notion_n of_o the_o church_n that_o it_o be_v a_o society_n of_o people_n instruct_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n govern_v by_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o have_v communion_n together_o in_o the_o christian_a sacrament_n but_o if_o the_o church_n be_v invisible_a there_o can_v be_v no_o instruction_n no_o government_n no_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n and_o hence_o will_v appear_v that_o a_o invisible_a church_n be_v against_o all_o the_o end_n for_o which_o god_n have_v establish_v a_o church_n upon_o earth_n the_o first_o be_v to_o instruct_v and_o guide_v the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o the_o port_n of_o salvation_n and_o for_o this_o end_n be_v necessary_a instruction_n in_o the_o faith_n &_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n which_o require_v visibility_n both_o in_o the_o pastor_n and_o in_o the_o people_n for_o invisible_a pastor_n can_v instruct_v nor_o administrate_n sacrament_n and_o therefore_o the_o church_n which_o consist_v of_o pastor_n &_o people_n must_v be_v visible_a for_o as_o d._n humphrey_n say_v whilst_o the_o minister_n teach_v 3._o humph_o jesuit_n part_n 2_o rat_n 3._o other_o learn_v they_o administrate_n the_o sacrament_n these_o receive_v they_o etc._n etc._n who_o see_v not_o these_o thing_n be_v more_o blind_a than_o a_o m●odiwarp_n but_o if_o the_o church_n be_v invisible_a there_o can_v be_v no_o instruction_n &_o consequent_o no_o faith_n no_o sacrament_n &_o so_o none_o can_v be_v direct_v in_o this_o invisible_a church_n unto_o the_o port_n of_o salvation_n this_o show_v that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v visible_a at_o least_o to_o the_o member_n of_o it_o the_o second_o ●nd_n for_o which_o the_o church_n be_v ordain_v be_v to_o receive_v the_o gentile_n and_o to_o afford_v to_o all_o person_n who_o be_v astray_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n by_o enter_v into_o the_o church_n this_o the_o prophet_n esay_n speak_v of_o the_o church_n foretell_v 60.11_o esay_n 60.11_o thy_o gate_n shall_v be_v open_a continual_o day_n and_o night_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v shut_v that_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o gentile_n may_v be_v bring_v unto_o thou_o but_o if_o the_o church_n have_v be_v invisible_a her_o gate_n have_v be_v worse_o than_o shut_v for_o they_o can_v never_o have_v be_v find_v to_o be_v knock_v at_o and_o so_o the_o gentile_n &_o heretic_n albeit_o never_o so_o desirous_a can_v never_o have_v enter_v which_o be_v against_o the_o scripture_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n this_o reason_n prove_v that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v visible_a even_o to_o stranger_n the_o three_o end_n be_v to_o compose_v difference_n which_o may_v arise_v among_o christian_n according_a to_o that_o of_o our_o saviour_n 18.17_o math._n 18.17_o tell_v the_o church_n but_o have_v the_o church_n be_v invisible_a she_o can_v neither_o have_v be_v tell_v nor_o find_v invisible_a judge_n can_v compose_v difference_n the_o four_o end_n be_v to_o oppose_v all_o error_n &_o heresy_n 4.11_o ephes_n 4.11_o for_o which_o cause_n god_n establish_v pastor_n in_o the_o church_n to_o conserve_v the_o people_n in_o the_o true_a doctrine_n from_o the_o circumvention_n of_o error_n but_o have_v the_o church_n be_v invisible_a she_o can_v not_o have_v oppose_v heresy_n they_o have_v prevail_v without_o control_n it_o there_o have_v be_v no_o church_n to_o oppose_v heresy_n before_o the_o protestant_n peep_v it_o up_o what_o have_v become_v of_o the_o christian_a religion_n sure_o it_o have_v be_v a_o puddle_n of_o error_n or_o a_o mass_n of_o confusion_n so_o that_o this_o invisible_a church_n be_v against_o all_o the_o chief_a end_n for_o which_o god_n establish_v a_o church_n upon_o earth_n it_o be_v also_o against_o famous_a protestant_n who_o sharp_o censure_v it_o melanchton_n who_o luther_n equal_v to_o the_o father_n 393.394_o melan._n in_o council_n theol_n p._n 393.394_o call_v it_o monstruous_a it_o be_v necessary_a say_v he_o to_o confess_v the_o church_n to_o be_v visible_a whereunto_o tend_v this_o monstruous_a speech_n which_o deny_v the_o visible_a church_n it_o abolish_v all_o testimony_n of_o antiquity_n it_o cause_v a_o endless_a confusion_n and_o induce_v a_o commonwealth_n of_o unruly_a ruffian_n or_o atheist_n where_o no_o one_o care_v for_o another_o ●7_n humph_o je_n par_fw-fr 2._o rat_n 3._o enoch_n claph_n in_o antid_v schi_fw-la p._n ●7_n d._n humphrey_n say_v it_o be_v a_o manifest_a conclusion_n that_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v conspicuous_a another_o protestant_n say_v of_o the_o puritan_n they_o affirm_v against_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o church_n for_o some_o age_n be_v not_o visible_a this_o can_v be_v a_o sound_a article_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n which_o such_o protestant_n so_o sharp_o censure_v now_o we_o shall_v see_v how_o it_o be_v against_o protestant_n principle_n yea_o and_o destroy_v itself_o for_o they_o ordinary_o assign_v two_o necessary_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n the_o right_a preach_v of_o the_o word_n &_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o which_o the_o presbyterian_o add_v their_o discipline_n as_o a_o three_o mark_n i_o inquire_v then_o if_o this_o church_n which_o some_o of_o they_o make_v invisible_a for_o 900._o some_o for_o 1000_o and_o other_o for_o 12._o hundred_o year_n have_v preach_v and_o sacrament_n during_o that_o time_n or_o not_o if_o it_o have_v than_o it_o can_v not_o be_v invisible_a for_o invisible_a people_n can_v neither_o be_v instruct_v nor_o baptize_v if_o it_o have_v no_o preach_v nor_o sacrament_n than_o it_o have_v be_v a_o miserable_a church_n or_o rather_o no_o church_n at_o all_o which_o want_v these_o two_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o constitute_v a_o church_n if_o a_o famous_a presbyterian_a minister_n take_v occasion_n late_o whilst_o he_o be_v baptise_v a_o child_n on_o a_o cold_a winter_n day_n to_o say_v against_o the_o anabaptist_n it_o be_v cold_a dip_v to_o day_n i_o love_v not_o summer_n sacrament_n may_v not_o any_o one_o say_v more_o just_o against_o the_o presbyterian_o in_o many_o day_n a_o invisible_a church_n can_v be_v find_v out_o i_o love_v not_o a_o church_n wherein_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n &_o above_o there_o be_v neither_o summer_n nor_o winter_n sacrament_n moreover_o either_o this_o invisible_a church_n have_v some_o government_n or_o it_o have_v none_o if_o it_o have_v any_o it_o can_v not_o be_v invisible_a as_o be_v evident_a and_o if_o that_o government_n be_v presbyterian_a discipline_n that_o church_n have_v not_o be_v only_o visible_a to_o these_o who_o obey_v it_o but_o also_o very_o sensible_a to_o those_o who_o do_v not_o willingjy_o stoop_v to_o it_o or_o else_o it_o have_v be_v very_o far_o different_a from_o the_o nature_n of_o our_o scottish_a presbytery_n if_o that_o invisible_a church_n have_v no_o government_n than_o it_o want_v that_o which_o no_o society_n can_v want_v and_o without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o order_n but_o confusion_n yea_o this_o invisible_a church_n be_v such_o a_o rare_a device_n that_o it_o destroy_v itself_o for_o no_o church_n albeit_o never_o so_o invisible_a can_v be_v imagine_v without_o internal_a faith_n at_o least_o now_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v 10.17_o rom._n 10.17_o according_a to_o s._n paul_n and_o how_o shall_v they_o hear_v say_v the_o same_o apostle_n without_o a_o preacher_n but_o in_o a_o invisible_a church_n there_o can_v be_v no_o preach_v or_o instruction_n and_o so_o no_o faith_n and_o no_o faith_n no_o church_n not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o invisible_a one_o in_o a_o word_n this_o invisible_a church_n which_o want_v preach_v faith_n sacrament_n and_o government_n have_v be_v a_o miserable_a or_o rather_o a_o chimerical_a church_n last_o this_o invisible_a church_n do_v high_o disparage_v the_o christian_a religion_n for_o it_o make_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n of_o who_o glory_n above_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n so_o much_o be_v
which_o be_v erect_v upon_o it_o but_o all_o these_o lie_n calumny_n false_a accusation_n and_o rail_n can_v prevail_v nothing_o against_o the_o church_n which_o may_v say_v true_o as_o the_o prophet_n david_n foretell_v of_o she_o seq_n psal_n 128.1_o &_o seq_n how_o often_o have_v they_o impugn_a i_o from_o my_o youth_n how_o often_o have_v they_o impugn_a i_o but_o they_o have_v not_o prevail_v against_o i_o sinner_n have_v build_v upon_o my_o back_n they_o have_v prolong_v their_o iniquity_n our_o just_a lord_n will_v cut_v the_o neck_n of_o sinner_n let_v they_o all_o be_v confound_v and_o turn_v back_o which_o hate_n zion_n s._n chrysostom_n write_v on_o these_o word_n of_o the_o psalm_n the_o queen_n stand_v at_o thy_o right_a hand_n say_v true_o and_o excellent_o of_o she_o the_o church_n be_v oppose_v 44._o chrysost_n ver_fw-la 10._o psal_n 44._o and_o overcome_v be_v pursue_v by_o snaire_n she_o get_v the_o upper_a hand_n be_v provoke_v with_o wrong_n and_o reproach_n she_o be_v make_v more_o illustrious_a she_o be_v hurt_v but_o yield_v not_o to_o the_o print_n of_o the_o wound_n how_o ever_o she_o be_v toss_v she_o be_v not_o overwhelm_v she_o endure_v great_a tempest_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o suffer_v no_o shipwreck_n she_o wrestle_v but_o be_v not_o throw_v down_o thus_o he_o thererefore_o this_o cloud_n of_o the_o minister_n calumny_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v change_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n &_o bring_v in_o corruption_n which_o be_v the_o very_a same_o which_o all_o heretic_n have_v use_v &_o the_o new_a arian_n use_v to_o this_o day_n be_v dispel_v i_o be_o confident_a that_o by_o god_n grace_n you_o see_v now_o the_o admirable_a light_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o therefore_o abandon_v the_o darkness_n of_o all_o error_n will_v walk_v in_o this_o light_n by_o which_o all_o the_o saint_n have_v attain_v unto_o the_o light_n of_o heaven_n to_o this_o effect_n with_o many_o more_o word_n speak_v the_o catholic_a after_o i_o have_v diligent_o consider_v all_o these_o thing_n the_o head_n of_o which_o be_v give_v i_o in_o writing_n i_o do_v not_o only_o by_o god_n grace_n see_v with_o my_o understanding_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o also_o i_o be_v bend_v with_o my_o will_n to_o follow_v &_o embrace_v it_o lay_v aside_o many_o worldly_a difficulty_n which_o only_o stand_v in_o my_o way_n and_o have_v hearty_o thank_v my_o catholic_a friend_n by_o who_o pain_n &_o charity_n i_o have_v receive_v so_o much_o help_v i_o earnest_o desire_v that_o for_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o work_n he_o will_v assist_v i_o to_o consider_v how_o the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v know_v by_o these_o 4._o note_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o nicen_n creed_n and_o which_o he_o brief_o touch_v above_o to_o which_o he_o willing_o condescend_v show_v i_o that_o any_o man_n who_o believe_v the_o scripture_n may_v find_v the_o true_a church_n so_o manifest_o there_o describe_v by_o these_o property_n that_o he_o may_v easy_o find_v she_o out_o or_o rather_o clear_o see_v she_o so_o that_o s._n augustin_n say_v 33._o aug._n conc_fw-fr 2._o in_o psal_n 30._o the_o unite_v eccl_n c._n 5._o lib._n 1._o ad_fw-la cres_n c._n 33._o the_o scripture_n speak_v more_o obscurly_a of_o christ_n then_o of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o be_v so_o clear_a for_o the_o church_n that_o by_o no_o shift_n of_o false_a interpretation_n they_o can_v be_v avoid_v that_o the_o impudence_n of_o any_o forehead_n that_o will_v stand_v against_o such_o evidence_n be_v confound_v and_o that_o it_o be_v prodigious_a blindness_n not_o to_o see_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n i_o shall_v collect_v brief_o the_o sum_n of_o our_o conference_n in_o this_o matter_n chap._n xxxii_o the_o true_a church_n prove_v from_o the_o scripture_n &_o first_o by_o her_o unity_n as_o the_o great_a dissension_n of_o our_o minister_n furnish_v to_o i_o the_o first_o occasion_n of_o my_o doubt_n that_o their_o church_n can_v not_o be_v the_o true_a church_n so_o the_o very_a light_n of_o nature_n do_v show_v i_o that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n must_v have_v unity_n for_o what_o more_o belong_v to_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o house_n of_o order_n than_o unity_n what_o more_o fit_a for_o his_o kingdom_n which_o must_v endure_v for_o ever_o then_o unity_n which_o tend_v to_o preservation_n what_o more_o unbeseeming_a they_o than_o disorder_n &_o division_n which_o at_o length_n produce_v ruin_n &_o destruction_n the_o scripture_n be_v full_a of_o clear_a testimony_n to_o this_o purpose_n as_o where_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o church_n my_o dove_n be_v one_o my_o belove_a be_v one_o 6._o cant._n 6._o and_o it_o be_v call_v by_o our_o saviour_n one_o sheepfold_n 16._o john_n 10_o 16._o s._n paul_n do_v also_o excellent_o show_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o be_v diverse_a function_n by_o the_o unity_n of_o man_n body_n in_o which_o be_v diverse_a member_n but_o all_o animate_v with_o one_o spirit_n as_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v quicken_v by_o one_o faith_n for_o else_o where_o he_o say_v there_o be_v one_o lord_n 4.5_o ephes_n 4.5_o one_o faith_n &_o one_o baptism_n but_o of_o these_o &_o other_o passage_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v bring_v there_o be_v one_o which_o have_v a_o special_a influence_n upon_o i_o and_o that_o be_v our_o saviour_n prayer_n in_o the_o 17._o of_o s._n john_n where_o after_o he_o have_v pray_v most_o earnest_o for_o the_o unity_n of_o his_o apostle_n he_o pray_v also_o for_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n 20._o john_n 17_o 20._o say_v neither_o pray_v i_o for_o those_o alone_a but_o for_o they_o also_o who_o shall_v believe_v in_o i_o through_o their_o word_n that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o father_n be_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v one_o that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o i_o do_v serious_o ponder_v this_o reason_n which_o our_o saviour_n bring_v to_o obtain_v his_o desire_n which_o be_v much_o urge_v also_o by_o the_o catholic_a who_o show_v i_o that_o our_o saviour_n declare_v thereby_o the_o unity_n of_o his_o church_n shall_v be_v so_o admirable_a that_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v move_v thereby_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n &_o a_o true_a prophet_n send_v from_o heaven_n as_o some_o father_n have_v also_o observe_v therefore_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o true_a church_n must_v have_v unity_n locum_fw-la apud_fw-la maldonat_fw-la in_o hunc_fw-la locum_fw-la and_o that_o that_o can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o want_v it_o and_o if_o we_o shall_v speak_v of_o the_o holy_a father_n they_o be_v so_o much_o for_o this_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n that_o some_o of_o they_o have_v write_v whole_a treatise_n concern_v it_o now_o it_o be_v no_o less_o evident_a both_o to_o sense_n and_o reason_n that_o this_o unity_n agree_v better_a to_o the_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n then_o to_o the_o protestant_a church_n or_o rather_o it_o agree_v full_o to_o the_o one_o and_o not_o at_o all_o to_o the_o other_o for_o who_o may_v not_o see_v by_o the_o manifold_a schism_n &_o division_n which_o be_v now_o among_o protestant_n &_o all_o other_o sectary_n as_o well_o in_o doctrine_n as_o government_n which_o we_o have_v touch_v above_o and_o which_o do_v daily_o augment_v that_o the_o protestant_a church_n have_v no_o unity_n short_o after_o luther_n rise_n the_o protestant_a church_n be_v divide_v into_o three_o principal_a sect_n to_o wit_n the_o lutheran_n calvinist_n &_o zuinglians_n that_o we_o may_v speak_v nothing_o of_o the_o anabaptist_n and_o libertins_n but_o now_o their_o division_n have_v so_o multiply_v that_o they_o can_v hardly_o be_v number_v and_o these_o division_n be_v not_o only_o great_a for_o the_o matter_n be_v in_o some_o principal_a point_n of_o doctrine_n but_o also_o have_v be_v very_o great_a for_o the_o manner_n for_o thereby_o diverse_a protestant_n have_v kill_v and_o destroy_v one_o another_o make_v bloody_a war_n and_o overturn_v kingdom_n &_o commonwealth_n so_o that_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o christian_a church_n but_o the_o protestant_n the_o world_n can_v not_o be_v move_v by_o the_o unity_n thereof_o to_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v send_v from_o heaven_n or_o have_v be_v a_o divine_a architect_n who_o have_v build_v such_o a_o babel_n of_o confusion_n but_o if_o lay_v aside_o rancour_n &_o prejudice_n we_o will_v cast_v our_o eye_n upon_o the_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n this_o unity_n appear_v wonderful_o in_o she_o for_o how_o
evident_a mark_n of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o antichrist_n neither_o indeed_o can_v any_o new_a sect_n with_o any_o probability_n call_v themselves_o catholic_n for_o what_o will_v be_v more_o ridiculous_a then_o if_o the_o independent_o or_o quaker_n who_o be_v of_o so_o late_o stand_v and_o of_o so_o little_a extension_n will_v style_v themselves_o catholic_n this_o word_n signify_v universality_n both_o of_o time_n &_o place_n which_o they_o evident_o want_v the_o same_o may_v be_v as_o just_o say_v of_o the_o presbyterian_o or_o of_o any_o other_o protestant_n congregation_n and_o if_o any_o of_o these_o sect_n be_v so_o unwise_a as_o to_o call_v themselves_o so_o they_o will_v not_o be_v understand_v but_o take_v for_o papist_n i_o remember_v that_o my_o catholic_a friend_n show_v i_o that_o it_o have_v be_v a_o ordinary_a custom_n of_o those_o who_o separate_a themselv'_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n when_o they_o see_v that_o they_o neither_o have_v the_o thing_n signify_v by_o the_o word_n catholic_n nor_o can_v obtain_v the_o title_n of_o it_o to_o show_v themselves_o enemy_n to_o both_o this_o the_o old_a donatist_n do_v who_o pretend_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a 66._o aug._n count_v crescon_n l._n 3._o c._n 66._o the_o true_a church_n shall_v have_v communion_n of_o nation_n or_o be_v universal_a that_o truth_n be_v often_o among_o a_o few_o and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o fault_n of_o many_o to_o err_v this_o same_o some_o protestant_n do_v pretend_v against_o which_o may_v be_v oppose_v the_o word_n of_o s._n augustin_n 48_o aug._n epist_n 48_o who_o say_v as_o he_o shall_v be_v anathema_n or_o accurse_a who_o preach_v that_o neither_o christ_n suffer_v nor_o rise_v again_o because_o we_o learn_v by_o the_o gospel_n that_o it_o behove_v christ_n to_o suffer_v and_o to_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n so_o he_o shall_v also_o be_v anathema_n whosoever_o preach_v the_o church_n to_o be_v elsewhere_o then_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o all_o nation_n because_o by_o the_o self_n same_o gospel_n we_o learn_v in_o the_o word_n next_o follow_v penance_n to_o be_v preach_v in_o his_o name_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n throughout_o all_o nation_n then_o for_o the_o word_n catholic_a luther_n be_v so_o great_a a_o enemy_n to_o it_o that_o he_o take_v it_o out_o of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n put_v the_o word_n christian_n in_o place_n of_o it_o our_o presbyterian_o ordinary_o abstain_v from_o the_o word_n catholic_a turn_v it_o universal_a testam_fw-la beza_n in_o praefat_fw-la novi_fw-la testam_fw-la beza_n call_v it_o the_o vain_a term_n catholic_n a_o great_a apostle_n of_o the_o covenant_n show_v both_o his_o envy_n &_o anger_n at_o this_o word_n for_o when_o a_o gentleman_n in_o the_o north_n who_o have_v be_v summon_v not_o long_o ago_o to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o his_o faith_n before_o the_o presbytery_n of_o aberdeen_n have_v profess_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o catholic_a the_o say_a apostle_n be_v offend_v with_o that_o title_n and_o will_v he_o to_o call_v himself_o a_o papist_n which_o he_o neglect_v to_o do_v the_o minister_n they_o inquire_v of_o he_o if_o the_o woman_n of_o his_o religion_n call_v themselves_o catholic_n also_o which_o question_n have_v such_o a_o uncivil_a sense_n as_o he_o propose_v it_o that_o some_o of_o his_o more_o modest_a brethren_n sit_v in_o judgement_n with_o he_o show_n both_o by_o their_o countenance_n and_o word_n their_o dislike_n of_o his_o uncivility_n s._n augustin_n relate_v how_o the_o donatist_n also_o be_v great_a enemy_n to_o the_o word_n catholic_a call_v it_o a_o humane_a forgery_n or_o fiction_n 33._o aug._n lib._n 1._o cont_n gaudent_fw-la c._n 33._o which_o the_o holy_a father_n call_v word_n of_o blasphemy_n to_o conclude_v therefore_o this_o point_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a both_o by_o the_o creed_n and_o by_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o true_a church_n must_v be_v catholic_a so_o it_o be_v very_o clear_a &_o certain_a that_o the_o protestant_a church_n before_o luther_n be_v not_o catholic_n that_o as_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o catholic_a and_o by_o all_o appearance_n never_o will_v be_v for_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o heresy_n it_o gote_v all_o what_o it_o possess_v at_o the_o first_o hurl_v and_o these_o 80._o year_n it_o have_v make_v no_o progress_n but_o rather_o by_o its_o own_o division_n have_v go_v backward_o and_o have_v be_v still_o on_o the_o lose_a hand_n therefore_o the_o protestant_a church_n not_o be_v catholic_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n upon_o the_o other_o part_n it_o be_v no_o less_o evident_a that_o of_o all_o christian_a society_n the_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o it_o be_v also_o in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n augustin_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o ever_o since_o it_o have_v have_v the_o communion_n of_o nation_n keep_v all_o general_n counsel_n make_v decree_n condemn_v all_o error_n &_o heresy_n and_o in_o a_o word_n what_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v so_o clear_o foretold_a of_o the_o universality_n of_o christ_n church_n and_o of_o the_o conversion_n of_o gentile_n from_o infidelity_n to_o christianity_n have_v be_v accomplish_v in_o this_o church_n alone_o and_o perform_v by_o her_o member_n therefore_o this_o church_n and_o no_o other_o be_v the_o holy_a catholic_a and_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n chap._n xxxv_o the_o true_a church_n prove_v by_o her_o continue_a succession_n &_o lawful_a vocation_n of_o her_o pastor_n for_o which_o she_o be_v call_v apostolic_a by_o this_o note_n or_o property_n of_o apostolic_a the_o holy_a father_n and_o ancient_a counsel_n will_v have_v the_o true_a church_n clear_o know_v and_o distinguish_v from_o all_o new_a sect_n &_o heresy_n the_o church_n be_v call_v apostolic_a principal_o for_o two_o reason_n first_o because_o it_o be_v found_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o from_o their_o time_n must_v continue_v unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n second_o because_o the_o pastor_n thereof_o derive_v their_o mission_n from_o the_o apostle_n by_o ordinary_a call_n &_o personal_a succession_n in_o the_o first_o sense_n the_o true_a church_n be_v clear_o distinguish_v from_o all_o sect_n and_o false_a church_n because_o they_o be_v not_o found_v by_o the_o apostle_n but_o by_o some_o new_a pretend_a reformer_n who_o arise_v after_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o several_a generation_n and_o therefore_o these_o new_a church_n found_v and_o erect_v by_o they_o be_v not_o call_v apostolic_a but_o have_v their_o denomination_n from_o their_o founder_n such_o as_o the_o arian_n pelagian_o lutheran_n calvinist_n in_o the_o second_o sense_n she_o be_v also_o clear_o distinguish_v from_o false_a church_n because_o they_o have_v not_o lawful_a pastor_n derive_v their_o vocation_n from_o the_o apostle_n by_o a_o continue_a and_o uninterrupt_a succession_n but_o intrude_v themselves_o into_o the_o office_n of_o pastor_n without_o any_o lawful_a call_n of_o the_o first_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n apostolic_a we_o have_v speak_v sufficient_o above_o when_o we_o prove_v the_o true_a church_n by_o her_o perpetuity_n and_o continue_a succession_n and_o disprove_v all_o false_a church_n for_o want_v of_o it_o which_o proof_n need_v not_o to_o be_v here_o repeat_v of_o the_o second_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n apostolic_a we_o shall_v here_o brief_o speak_v beside_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o creed_n it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o scripture_n that_o there_o must_v be_v always_o pastor_n in_o the_o church_n lawful_o call_v to_o that_o charge_n god_n say_v by_o the_o prophet_n esay_n upon_o thy_o wall_n 62.6_o esay_n 62.6_o o_o jerusalem_n i_o have_v appoint_v watchman_n all_o the_o day_n and_o all_o the_o night_n they_o shall_v not_o hold_v their_o peace_n for_o ever_o 4.11_o ephes_n 4.11_o the_o apostle_n s_o paul_n show_v how_o our_o saviour_n perform_v this_o promise_n by_o appoint_v pastor_n and_o teacher_n to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n till_o we_o all_o meet_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n our_o saviour_n also_o have_v promise_v his_o continual_a assistance_n unto_o the_o pastor_n of_o his_o church_n behold_v ult._n math._n ult._n i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o even_o unto_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n as_o there_o must_v be_v always_o pastor_n in_o the_o church_n so_o they_o must_v be_v lawful_o call_v to_o that_o charge_n or_o else_o they_o be_v not_o pastor_n but_o thief_n and_o robber_n s._n paul_n say_v 15._o heb._n 5.4_o rom._n 10_o 15._o no_o man_n take_v upon_o he_o that_o honour_n but_o he_o who_o be_v call_v of_o god_n as_o aaron_n and_o again_o how_o shall_v they_o preach_v unless_o they_o be_v sent●_n god_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n reprove_v
get_v no_o more_o rest_n next_o as_o you_o false_o pretend_v your_o faith_n to_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o now_o as_o groundless_o you_o pretend_v the_o catholic_a faith_n to_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o same_o word_n which_o as_o yet_o you_o can_v never_o make_v good_a in_o any_o one_o point_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o church_n of_o scotland_n but_o it_o be_v as_o true_a that_o the_o church_n of_o scotland_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v of_o far_o great_a authority_n and_o which_o have_v judge_v &_o condemn_v all_o former_a heresy_n and_o triumph_v over_o they_o now_o follow_v your_o dismal_a song_n with_o your_o abiuration_n &_o detestation_n of_o the_o faith_n order_n &_o discipline_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o first_o you_o strick_v at_o the_o visible_a head_n and_o governor_n of_o it_o under_o christ_n who_o you_o call_v antichrist_n detest_a his_o authority_n which_o you_o call_v usurp_v the_o principal_a reason_n for_o which_o you_o believe_v this_o strange_a article_n of_o your_o faith_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n be_v because_o he_o claim_v primacy_n over_o other_o bishop_n and_o extend_v his_o care_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o he_o affirm_v to_o be_v commit_v to_o his_o charge_n as_o unto_o s._n peter_n successor_n if_o your_o reason_n be_v good_a then_o s._n peter_n himself_o have_v be_v the_o first_o antichrist_n for_o both_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n show_v that_o he_o receive_v from_o christ_n the_o primacy_n over_o the_o other_o apostle_n and_o that_o the_o care_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v entrust_v to_o he_o s._n matthew_n show_v that_o peter_n be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o apostle_n the_o name_n say_v he_o 2._o math._n 10_o 2._o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v these_o the_o first_o s●mon_n who_o be_v call_v peter_n now_o peter_n be_v not_o first_o in_o call_v but_o in_o preeminence_n for_o as_o s._n ambrose_n say_v in_o 2._o cor._n 12._o andrew_z first_o follow_v our_o saviour_n before_o peter_n and_o yet_o the_o primacy_n andrew_n receive_v not_o but_o peter_n the_o same_o be_v show_v by_o the_o change_n of_o his_o name_n which_o christ_n promise_v in_o the_o 1._o of_o s._n john_n and_o thereafter_o perform_v 16._o math._n 16._o in_o s_n matthew_n where_o he_o say_v thou_o be_v peter_n or_o a_o rock_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n this_o change_n of_o the_o name_n of_o simon_n into_o peter_n foretell_v by_o christ_n and_o thereafter_o perform_v by_o he_o be_v not_o without_o great_a mystery_n and_o these_o excellent_a privilege_n which_o our_o saviour_n promise_v to_o he_o of_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n &_o of_o bind_v and_o lose_v do_v show_n that_o he_o be_v particular_o to_o grace_n and_o advance_v he_o above_o other_o which_o he_o perform_v after_o his_o resurrection_n when_o he_o say_v to_o he_o feed_v my_o sheep_n feed_v my_o lamb_n give_v he_o thereby_o the_o charge_n of_o his_o whole_a flock_n 21.16_o 5._o john_n 21.16_o the_o same_o supremacy_n of_o s._n peter_n may_v be_v show_v by_o many_o other_o preeminence_n record_v in_o scripture_n as_o how_o christ_n pray_v particular_o for_o he_o that_o his_o faith_n may_v not_o fail_v and_o pay_v tribute_n for_o he_o but_o for_o brevity_n sake_n they_o be_v omit_v now_o we_o shall_v brief_o see_v how_o the_o holy_a father_n understand_v these_o scripture_n s._n gregory_n the_o great_a say_v ●_o greg._n lib_n ●_o apost_n 7_o ●_o it_o be_v manifest_a to_o all_o person_n who_o know_v the_o gospel_n that_o from_o our_o lord_n own_o mouth_n the_o ●●re_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v 〈◊〉_d to_o s._n peter_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o to_o for_o what_o end_n say_v he_o do_v christ_n shed_v his_o blood_n 86._o chrysost_o lib._n 2._o de_fw-la sacerdotio_fw-la aug._n epist_n 86._o but_o that_o he_o may_v purchase_v these_o sheep_n the_o care_n of_o which_o he_o commit_v to_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n s._n augustin_n call_v s._n peter_n the_o head_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o gate-keeper_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n s._n cyprian_n say_v julian._n cypr._n epist_n ad_fw-la julian._n we_o hold_v peter_n the_o head_n and_o root_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o a_o word_n all_o the_o holy_a father_n affirm_v the_o same_o they_o do_v likewise_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v s._n peter_n successor_n in_o that_o supreme_a authority_n s._n athanasius_n write_v to_o pope_n liberius_n say_v felicem_fw-la athanas_n epist_n ad_fw-la libre_fw-la &_o ep._n ad_fw-la felicem_fw-la for_o this_o cause_n the_o universal_a church_n be_v commit_v to_o you_o by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n that_o you_o shall_v labour_v for_o all_o man_n and_o again_o write_v to_o pope_n felix_n he_o say_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o thy_o foundation_n the_o pillar_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v the_o bishop_n be_v fortify_v s._n augustin_n say_v 165._o aug._n ep_v 165._o in_o the_o roma●_n church_n the_o principality_n of_o the_o apostolic_a chair_n do_v ever_o flourish_v and_o elsewhere_o number_v the_o priest_n from_o the_o sea_n of_o peter_n donati_n aug._n in_o psal_n count_v part_n donati_n and_o in_o that_o order_n of_o father_n see_v who_o succeed_v to_o another_o this_o be_v the_o rock_n which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n do_v not_o overcome_v to_o which_o we_o shall_v only_o add_v the_o testimony_n of_o s._n bernard_n who_o write_v thus_o to_o eugenius_n thou_o be_v he_o to_o who_o the_o key_n of_o heaven_n be_v deliver_v 8._o ●ern_n l._n 2._o de_fw-la consid_fw-la c._n 8._o and_o to_o who_o the_o sheep_n be_v commit_v there_o be_v other_o porter_n of_o heaven_n &_o other_o pastor_n of_o flock_n but_o thou_o ●●st_n ●●●erited_v in_o more_o glorious_a and_o different_a sort_n for_o they_o have_v every_o 〈◊〉_d their_o particular_a s●ock_n but_o to_o thou_o all_o vniver-●●●_a 〈…〉_o of_o all_o the_o pastor_n themselves_o but_o thou_o will_v ask_v i_o how_o i_o prove_v that_o even_o by_o our_o lord_n word_n for_o to_o who_o of_o all_o i_o say_v not_o only_o bishop_n but_o apostle_n be_v the_o sheep_n so_o absolute_o and_o without_o limitation_n commit_v if_o thou_o love_v i_o peter_z feed_v my_o sheep_n he_o say_v not_o the_o people_n of_o this_o kingdom_n or_o that_o city_n but_o my_o sheep_n without_o all_o distinction_n so_o s._n bernard_n by_o which_o authority_n &_o testimony_n both_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n you_o see_v what_o solid_a ground_n the_o pope_n authority_n have_v that_o it_o be_v confer_v by_o christ_n on_o s._n peter_n and_o that_o it_o have_v be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n &_o christian_a world_n in_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o successor_n therefore_o you_o very_o rash_o have_v reject_v this_o authority_n which_o have_v be_v establish_v &_o confirm_v by_o christ_n special_a providence_n unto_o this_o day_n but_o more_o wicked_o do_v you_o call_v it_o a_o usurp_a tyranny_n and_o believe_v the_o pope_n for_o vindicate_v and_o exercise_v the_o same_o authority_n to_o be_v the_o great_a antichrist_n whereas_o you_o ought_v to_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n these_o who_o honour_n &_o reverence_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n &_o of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n follow_v the_o example_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o ancient_a good_a christian_n but_o these_o who_o now_o a_o day_n endeavour_v to_o dishonour_n and_o revile_v they_o have_v the_o heretic_n for_o their_o predecessor_n who_o never_o carry_v goodwill_n to_o they_o s._n augustin_n show_v that_o the_o donatist_n call_v the_o apostolic_a sea_n the_o chair_n of_o pestilence_n but_o that_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o epithet_n of_o the_o covenant_a minister_n who_o excee_v in_o rail_n and_o blasphemy_n all_o that_o ever_o speak_v when_o they_o fall_v upon_o this_o point_n make_v thereby_o the_o simple_a people_n believe_v that_o antichristian_a article_n of_o their_o faith_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n but_o the_o holy_a father_n take_v it_o for_o a_o undoubted_a mark_n that_o these_o who_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o be_v not_o of_o his_o communion_n belong_v not_o to_o christ_n but_o to_o antichrist_n s._n hierom_n write_v to_o s_n damasus_n say_v who_o gather_v not_o with_o thou_o scatter_v that_o be_v who_o it_o not_o christ_n be_v anti-christs_n have_v now_o see_v that_o the_o pope_n who_o the_o covenanter_n call_v malicious_o antichrist_n be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n it_o remain_v evident_a that_o his_o authority_n be_v lawful_a &_o
practice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n against_o who_o custom_n to_o dispute_v as_o s._n augustin_n affirm_v be_v most_o insolent_a madness_n therefore_o without_o or_o rather_o against_o all_o reason_n do_v you_o detest_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n no_o religion_n can_v be_v without_o ceremony_n and_o we_o see_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o all_o great_a mystery_n be_v accompany_v with_o sublime_a &_o significative_a ceremony_n as_o our_o saviour_n nativity_n baptism_n transfiguration_n resurrection_n ascension_n the_o descent_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n our_o saviour_n also_o at_o all_o great_a &_o solemn_a action_n use_v many_o ceremony_n as_o at_o the_o raise_n of_o lazarus_n the_o cure_v of_o the_o man_n who_o be_v both_o deaf_a &_o dumb_a mark_v 7.33_o and_o upon_o many_o other_o occasion_n all_o which_o ceremony_n serve_v as_o ornament_n of_o religion_n present_v a_o external_a majesty_n to_o the_o sense_n and_o make_v the_o spiritual_a mystery_n to_o be_v more_o clear_o understand_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o great_a reverence_n and_o to_o be_v more_o deep_o imprint_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o beholder_n the_o same_o may_v be_v easy_o verify_v of_o the_o catholic_a ceremony_n therefore_o you_o who_o under_o pretext_n of_o spirituality_n be_v profess_v enemy_n to_o all_o ceremony_n do_v not_o take_v heed_n that_o you_o take_v all_o order_n &_o decency_n from_o the_o church_n &_o service_n of_o god_n that_o you_o oppose_v the_o practice_n of_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n and_o do_v render_v the_o sublime_a mystery_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n contemptible_a you_o renounce_v also_o to_o use_v your_o word_n the_o pope_n 5._o bastard_n sacrament_n but_o that_o be_v only_o proper_a to_o adulteress_n church_n to_o have_v bastard_n sacrament_n the_o catholic_a church_n have_v none_o but_o lawful_a sacrament_n institute_v by_o her_o heavenly_a spouse_n jesus-christ_n of_o admirable_a virtue_n &_o grace_n as_o we_o have_v see_v all_o these_o 5._o to_o be_v but_o indeed_o you_o have_v make_v even_o those_o two_o which_o you_o keep_v bastard_n sacrament_n by_o rob_v they_o of_o all_o virtue_n and_o grace_n we_o shall_v only_o speak_v a_o word_n of_o your_o other_o detestation_n which_o follow_v in_o this_o section_n because_o some_o of_o they_o have_v be_v touch_v above_o first_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o pope_n you_o detest_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o cruel_a against_o infant_n die_v without_o baptism_n and_o for_o the_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o baptism_n but_o this_o be_v also_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n yea_o of_o christ_n himself_o who_o have_v say_v 3.5_o john_n 3.5_o unless_o one_o be_v bear_v again_o of_o water_n &_o the_o spirit_n he_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o cruel_a as_o have_v be_v show_v above_o at_o more_o length_n whereas_o your_o judgement_n be_v both_o false_a and_o cruel_a against_o many_o child_n die_v with_o baptism_n exclude_v they_o from_o heaven_n yea_o not_o only_o your_o judgement_n be_v cruel_a but_o also_o your_o practice_n suffer_v many_o child_n to_o die_v without_o baptism_n hampton-court_n confer_v hampton-court_n for_o which_o cruelty_n king_n james_n affirm_v that_o your_o minister_n who_o be_v guilty_a of_o it_o will_v be_v damn_v you_o accuse_v next_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o blasphemy_n for_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n or_o transubstantiation_n which_o you_o wise_o make_v all_o one_o question_n and_o for_o teach_v that_o the_o wicked_a receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o they_o be_v not_o blasphemous_a who_o do_v believe_v christ_n word_n express_v by_o 3._o evangelist_n and_o one_o apostle_n and_o who_o follow_v the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n &_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n as_o the_o catholic_n do_v in_o this_o matter_n as_o have_v be_v show_v above_o and_o if_o the_o wicked_a do_v not_o receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n how_o can_v they_o be_v guilty_a of_o it_o as_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v the_o unworthy_a receiver_n of_o it_o to_o be_v but_o you_o be_v rather_o guilty_a of_o blasphemy_n even_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o protestant_n who_o will_v not_o believe_v christ_n clear_a word_n and_o deny_v thereby_o his_o omnipotency_n luther_n your_o first_o apostle_n give_v this_o judgement_n of_o you_o we_o censure_v as_o heretic_n &_o alien_n from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o zwinglians_n &_o all_o sacramentary_n 27._o luth._o cont_n lovanien_n thes_n 27._o who_o deny_v the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v receive_v with_o the_o carnal_a mouth_n in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o a_o famous_a doctor_n of_o his_o church_n continue_v the_o same_o opinion_n of_o you_o for_o speak_v of_o this_o same_o matter_n he_o say_v the_o sect_n of_o the_o calvinist_n be_v grow_v to_o such_o blasphemy_n and_o madness_n 3._o conrade_n shlussel_n theol._n calvin_n l._n 1._o c._n 3._o that_o they_o dare_v call_v in_o question_n god_n omnipotency_n then_o you_o accuse_v the_o pope_n &_o catholic_a church_n for_o dispensation_n in_o solemn_a oath_n and_o perjury_n but_o these_o be_v either_o vain_a or_o false_a allegation_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o church_n may_v dispense_v sometime_o with_o the_o bond_n of_o oath_n as_o she_o may_v loose_v from_o punishment_n and_o free_a man_n from_o the_o bond_n of_o sin_n according_a to_o that_o power_n which_o christ_n give_v to_o she_o say_v whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v on_o earth_n 16_o math._n 16_o shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o must_v be_v for_o a_o just_a cause_n and_o without_o the_o just_a prejudice_n of_o other_o as_o becan_n show_v 11_o becan_n de_fw-fr ur_fw-la &_o iustitia_fw-la quest_n 88_o q._n 11_o or_o else_o the_o dispensation_n be_v not_o valid_a perjury_n or_o false_a oath_n need_v no_o dispensation_n as_o you_o mistake_v or_o calumniate_v but_o must_v be_v only_o take_v away_o by_o true_a repentance_n as_o other_o sin_n be_v purge_v it_o be_v strange_a that_o you_o shall_v deny_v the_o lawful_a power_n of_o dispense_n to_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n such_o as_o s._n paul_n use_v with_o the_o incestuous_a corinthian_a and_o yet_o appropriate_v it_o to_o every_o one_o of_o your_o self_n and_o shall_v object_v that_o false_o as_o a_o crime_n to_o other_o whereof_o yourselves_o be_v so_o deep_o guilty_a for_o it_o be_v know_v how_o many_o oath_n &_o vow_n your_o first_o reformer_n do_v either_o break_v or_o dispense_v with_o at_o their_o own_o hand_n and_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v king_n james_n 41._o basilicon_fw-la doron_n p._n 41._o you_o be_v not_o behind_o with_o any_o in_o these_o enormity_n you_o accuse_v also_o false_o the_o pope_n &_o catholic_a church_n for_o dispense_n in_o degree_n of_o marriage_n forbid_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n unless_o you_o will_v have_v the_o ceremonial_a law_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o be_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o oblige_v all_o christian_n whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o if_o a_o man_n die_v without_o issue_n 25.5_o deuter._n 25.5_o his_o brother_n shall_v marry_v the_o widow_n which_o yourselves_o do_v not_o observe_v but_o deny_v that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v the_o church_n be_v so_o far_o from_o dispense_n in_o degree_n forbid_v by_o the_o eternal_a law_n of_o god_n that_o she_o have_v make_v law_n forbid_v &_o dissolve_v marriage_n in_o degree_n not_o prohibit_v by_o the_o eternal_a law_n of_o god_n which_o serve_v as_o outwork_n to_o guard_v the_o divin_fw-fr law_n she_o dispense_v indeed_o sometime_o upon_o good_a reason_n in_o her_o own_o law_n but_o never_o in_o the_o eternal_a law_n of_o god_n which_o she_o profess_v to_o be_v altogether_o indispensable_a neither_o be_v the_o pope_n and_o catholic_a church_n guilty_a of_o cruelty_n against_o the_o innocent_a divorce_v by_o forbid_v they_o to_o marry_v unless_o christ_n himself_o and_o s._n paul_n be_v cruel_a and_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n 16.8_o luke_n 16.8_o our_o saviour_n say_v every_o one_o that_o put_v away_o his_o wife_n and_o marry_v another_o commit_v adultery_n and_o he_o that_o marry_v she_o commit_v adultery_n 7.10_o 1._o cor._n 7.10_o s_o paul_n say_v not_o i_o give_v commandment_n but_o our_o lord_n that_o the_o wife_n depart_v not_o from_o her_o husband_n &_o if_o she_o depart_v to_o remain_v unmarried_a or_o to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o her_o husband_n whence_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o neither_o of_o the_o party_n can_v marry_v so_o long_o as_o the_o other_o life_n this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n s._n augustin_n prove_v this_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr adulterinis_fw-la coniugijs_fw-la 49._o
aug._n lib._n 50._o hom_n liar_n hom_n 49._o and_o elsewhere_o he_o say_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o cause_n of_o fornication_n to_o put_v away_o a_o adulteress_n wife_n but_o dure_v ng_z her_o life_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o marry_v another_o etc._n etc._n these_o be_v adultery_n not_o marriage_n be_v augustin_n contemn_v let_v christ_n be_v fear_v two_o ancient_a counsel_n do_v also_o confirm_v the_o same_o doctrine_n therefore_o 17._o council_n elibert_n c._n 9_o &_o milerit_n c._n 17._o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o deny_v marriage_n to_o the_o innocent_a party_n divorce_v be_v not_o cruel_a as_o you_o calumniate_v but_o observe_v the_o just_a law_n of_o christ_n the_o commandment_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o holy_a ancient_a church_n and_o if_o any_o think_v it_o hard_o they_o have_v a_o remedy_n prescribe_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o reconcile_v themselves_o to_o the_o guilty_a party_n but_o indeed_o you_o be_v cruel_a who_o under_o pretext_n of_o mercy_n do_v allow_v man_n to_o violate_v the_o just_a law_n of_o god_n and_o under_o the_o name_n of_o marriage_n authorize_v people_n to_o commit_v adultery_n to_o the_o destruction_n of_o their_o soul_n so_o that_o it_o be_v true_o verify_v of_o you_o that_o your_o mercy_n be_v cruel_a but_o let_v we_o proceed_v now_o to_o your_o other_o abiuration_n section_n viii_o of_o the_o christian_a sacrifice_n and_o of_o priesthood_n after_o you_o have_v rob_v christian_n of_o almost_o all_o the_o sacrament_n and_o of_o our_o saviour_n legacy_n to_o wit_n his_o precious_a body_n now_o you_o will_v rob_v the_o church_n of_o the_o christian_a sacrifice_n and_o will_v spoil_v god_n of_o the_o great_a external_a honour_n that_o can_v be_v render_v to_o he_o &_o be_v due_a to_o he_o alone_o and_o with_o the_o sacrifice_n you_o will_v also_o destroy_v the_o sacred_a order_n of_o priesthood_n by_o which_o it_o be_v offer_v for_o you_o renounce_v they_o in_o these_o most_o virulent_a term_n of_o your_o covenant_n we_o detest_v his_o devilish_a mass_n his_o blasphemous_a priesthood_n his_o profane_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o quick_a as_o never_o any_o religion_n neither_o under_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n nor_o under_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n want_v sacrifice_n which_o be_v a_o sup●●m_a worship_n due_a to_o god_n alone_o so_o the_o chris●●●n_a religion_n which_o excel_v all_o religion_n tha●_n 〈◊〉_d have_v be_v be_v not_o destitute_a of_o that_o perfection_n but_o have_v a_o most_o excellent_a sacrifice_n far_o exceed_v all_o the_o ancient_a sacrifice_n the_o prophet_n do_v foretell_v of_o it_o christ_n do_v institute_v it_o the_o holy_a apostle_n &_o their_o successor_n do_v offer_v it_o and_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n have_v in_o all_o age_n frequent_v it_o which_o point_v we_o shall_v brief_o touch_v the_o prophet_n david_n speak_v of_o christ_n say_v the_o lord_n have_v swear_v 109.4_o psal_n 109.4_o thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n which_o word_n have_v relation_n to_o these_o of_o moses_n 14.18_o genes_n 14.18_o melchisedech_n king_n of_o salem_n bring_v forth_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o he_o be_v priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n the_o holy_a father_n understand_v that_o prophecy_n of_o the_o christian_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n so_o s._n cyprian_n who_o be_v more_o priest_n cecil_n cypr._n epist_n 63._o add_v cecil_n say_v he_o of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n than_o our_o lord_n jesus-christ_n who_o offer_v a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n his_o father_n and_o offer_v the_o same_o which_o melchisedech_n have_v offer_v that_o be_v bread_n &_o wine_n to_o wit_n his_o own_o body_n &_o blood_n s._n augustin_n also_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n say_v 17._o aug._n de_fw-fr civit._fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 17._o c._n 17._o no_o where_o now_o be_v the_o priesthood_n &_o sacrifice_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n and_o every_o where_n under_o christ_n the_o priest_n be_v offer_v up_o that_o which_o melchisedech_n bring_v forth_o when_o he_o bless_v abraham_n and_o again_o speak_v of_o melchisedech_n sacrifice_n he_o say_v there_o do_v first_o appear_v the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v now_o offer_v up_o to_o god_n by_o christian_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o second_o prophecy_n be_v in_o malachi_n where_o god_n say_v to_o the_o jew_n 10._o malachi_n ch_n 1._o v._n 10._o i_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o you_o neither_o will_v i_o accept_v any_o offering_n at_o your_o hand_n for_o from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n to_o the_o go_v down_o of_o the_o same_o my_o name_n shall_v be_v great_a among_o the_o gentile_n and_o there_o be_v offer_v &_o sacrifice_v to_o my_o name_n in_o every_o place_n a_o pure_a oblation_n the_o holy_a father_n understand_v this_o as_o a_o most_o clear_a prophecy_n of_o the_o christian_a sacrifice_n so_o s._n ireneus_fw-la among_o the_o 12._o prophet_n say_v he_o malachi_n do_v so_o foretell_v of_o it_o 33._o ireneus_fw-la lib._n 4_o c._n 33._o i_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o ●u_n etc._n etc._n most_o clear_o signify_v by_o these_o word_n that_o the_o first_o people_n shall_v leave_v off_o to_o offer_v unto_o god_n and_o in_o every_o place_n a_o sacrifice_n and_o that_o pure_a shall_v be_v offer_v unto_o he_o so_o also_o s._n augustin_n do_v understand_v it_o 26._o aug_n de_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d it_o l._n 18._o c._n 26._o malachi_n say_v he_o prophesy_v of_o the_o church_n which_o we_o see_v now_o propagate_v say_v most_o clear_o unto_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o person_n of_o god_n i_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o you_o etc._n etc._n since_o then_o we_o see_v the_o sacrifice_n by_o the_o priesthood_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n offer_v up_o in_o every_o place_n &c_n &c_n and_o they_o can_v deny_v but_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v cease_v why_o do_v they_o yet_o look_v for_o another_o christ_n see_v that_o which_o they_o read_v prophesy_v and_o see_v fulfil_v can_v not_o be_v accomplish_v but_o by_o he_o if_o this_o prophecy_n be_v so_o strong_a against_o the_o jew_n it_o be_v no_o less_o forcible_a against_o the_o covenanter_n as_o the_o prophet_n foretell_v so_o christ_n fulfil_v by_o institute_v this_o sacrifice_n by_o offer_v it_o up_o himself_o and_o by_o ordain_v it_o to_o be_v offer_v up_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n this_o he_o perform_v when_o take_v bread_n he_o bless_v it_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o and_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n of_o the_o chalice_n he_o ordain_v the_o same_o oblation_n to_o be_v continue_v when_o he_o say_v to_o his_o apostle_n do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o so_o the_o holy_a father_n express_o teach_v s._n ireneus_fw-la who_o live_v in_o the_o second_o age_n speak_v of_o christ_n word_n of_o institution_n say_v christ_n teach_v the_o new_a oblation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n 33._o iren._n lib_n 4_o c._n 33._o which_o the_o church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n offer_v up_o to_o god_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n s._n cyprian_n affirm_v clear_o the_o same_o truth_n say_v our_o lord_n &_o god_n jesus-christ_n 3._o cypr_fw-la lib_n 2._o epist_n 3._o be_v the_o high_a priest_n of_o god_n the_o father_n he_o offer_v up_o himself_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o his_o father_n and_o the_o same_o he_o command_v to_o be_v do_v in_o his_o remembrance_n to_o which_o two_o we_o shall_v only_o adjoin_v s._n augustin_n who_o say_v 2._o aug._n in_o psal_n 33._o serm_n 2._o christ_n do_v institute_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n &_o blood_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o last_o of_o all_o may_v be_v add_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n which_o in_o all_o age_n from_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n do_v render_v unto_o god_n supreme_a honour_n &_o worship_n testify_v his_o sovereignty_n &_o power_n of_o life_n &_o death_n by_o this_o most_o excellent_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n which_o the_o holy_a father_n call_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o virtue_n also_o of_o which_o god_n have_v manifest_v by_o many_o miracle_n one_o of_o which_o i_o will_v recount_v out_o of_o s._n augustin_n to_o our_o purpose_n 8._o aug._n lib._n 22_o de_fw-fr civit._n c._n 8._o which_o be_v brief_o thus_o the_o house_n of_o a_o certain_a tribune_n in_o the_o country_n near_o to_o hippo_n the_o city_n of_o s._n augustins_n residence_n be_v vex_v with_o evil_a spirit_n to_o the_o great_a loss_n of_o his_o cattle_n and_o affliction_n of_o his_o servant_n he_o come_v and_o desire_v that_o one_o of_o our_o priest_n say_v the_o holy_a father_n i_o be_v then_o absent_a will_v go_v and_o pray_v that_o the_o devil_n
last_o section_n be_v sufficient_a where_o the_o scot_n be_v say_v to_o have_v become_v praestantissimi_fw-la omnium_fw-la christiani_n etc._n etc._n which_o have_v fill_v the_o christian_a world_n with_o the_o fame_n of_o their_o piety_n and_o zeal_n for_o propagate_a the_o eternal_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o which_o confession_n and_o ancient_a vniform_a religion_n we_o without_o any_o constraint_n of_o man_n but_o mere_o for_o the_o love_n of_o truth_n in_o hope_n of_o eternal_a reward_n though_o with_o imminent_a danger_n of_o temporal_a loss_n do_v most_o 417._o most_o most_o as_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o these_o who_o embrace_v the_o catholic_a faith_n in_o scotland_n where_o it_o be_v persecute_v do_v it_o willing_o so_o it_o be_v manifest_o know_v that_o many_o be_v constrain_v to_o take_v the_o covenant_n and_o so_o do_v not_o willing_o agree_v to_o it_o see_v above_o ch_n 4._o p._n 26._o and_o sect_n 1._o p._n 417._o willing_o agree_v in_o our_o whole_a hearr_n as_o unto_o god_n fine_a god_n god_n the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v so_o undoubted_a truth_n that_o it_o be_v altogether_o unalterable_a with_o the_o catholic_n but_o this_o protestant_a faith_n can_v be_v undoubted_a truth_n see_v it_o be_v so_o often_o alter_v by_o protestant_n see_v p._n 430._o in_o fine_a unalterable_a truth_n ground_v only_o upon_o his_o tradition_n his_o his_o the_o catholic_n believe_v all_o god_n reveal_v word_n whether_o unwritten_a or_o write_v according_a to_o the_o express_a command_n of_o the_o write_a word_n hold_v the_o tradition_n 2._o thess_n 2.15_o but_o the_o presbyterian_o against_o the_o write_a word_n reject_v all_o tradition_n reveal_v word_n and_o therefore_o we_o renounce_v all_o sect_n and_o heresy_n contrary_a unto_o it_o but_o especial_o the_o presbyterian_a sect_n and_o all_o the_o point_n thereof_o as_o they_o be_v now_o and_o have_v be_v ancient_o condemn_v by_o the_o treatise_n the_o the_o how_o the_o presbyterian_a sect_n albeit_o it_o pretend_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o all_o heretic_n do_v ordinary_o pretend_v be_v notwithstanding_o condemn_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o by_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n which_o be_v of_o far_o great_a authority_n than_o the_o presbyterian_a kirk_n of_o scotland_o may_v be_v see_v almost_o every_o where_o in_o the_o former_a treatise_n word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o holy_a catholiqve_n church_n but_o particular_o we_o reject_v the_o unparalleled_a insolency_n of_o that_o calvinistical_a 437._o calvinistical_a calvinistical_a as_o it_o have_v be_v show_v above_o sect_n 4._o p._n 432._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o therefore_o not_o anti_n christ_n so_o also_o all_o who_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o he_o belong_v not_o to_o christ_n but_o to_o anti_n christ_n and_o therefore_o be_v anti_n christian_n so_o s._n hierom_n express_o affirm_v ibid._n p._n 437._o anti-christian_n sect_n upon_o both_o the_o 439._o the_o the_o calvin_n usurp_a ove●_n the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o make_v up_o a_o new_a canon_n never_o know_v before_o and_o he_o usurp_v over_o the_o sense_n of_o they_o by_o reject_v the_o ancient_a sense_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o by_o invent_v new_a sense_n according_a to_o his_o private_a fancy_n so_o do_v also_o his_o disciple_n the_o presbyterian_a minister_n so_o do_v likewise_o luther_n most_o gross_o see_v p._n 439._o letter_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n upon_o the_o 440._o the_o the_o calvin_n do_v usurp_v over_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n who_o have_v no_o lawful_a authority_n will_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o reform_v the_o church_n to_o judge_v and_o condemn_v she_o to_o prescribe_v his_o own_o fancy_n as_o divine_a rule_n unto_o she_o so_o do_v also_o the_o presbyterian_o see_v p._n 440._o holy_a catholiqve_n church_n upon_o their_o own_o 41._o own_o own_o the_o presbyterian_o in_o scotland_n have_v have_v but_o 4._o prince_n since_o their_o religion_n begin_v and_o they_o have_v undeniable_o usurp_v high_o over_o they_o all_o as_o may_v be_v see_v p._n 440._o and_o 41._o lawful_a prince_n and_o superior_n and_o their_o tyrannize_a over_o the_o 26._o the_o the_o how_o they_o tyrannize_v over_o the_o conscience_n of_o their_o fellow_n subject_n be_v notorious_o know_v and_o may_v be_v see_v chap._n 4._o p._n 26._o conscience_n of_o their_o fellow-subiect_n 455._o fellow-subiect_n fellow-subiect_n these_o who_o under_o pretence_n of_o christian_a liberty_n disobey_v just_a law_n such_o as_o be_v the_o law_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v also_o observe_v in_o the_o primitive_a time_n as_o these_o about_o lend_v fast_v the_o single_a life_n of_o church_n man_n &c._n &c._n make_v their_o freedom_n a_o cloak_n of_o malice_n against_o s._n peter_n advice_n 1._o pet._n 2.13_o and_o a_o occasion_n to_o the_o flesh_n gal._n 5.13_o see_v above_o p._n 454._o 455._o all_o their_o licentious_a exemption_n from_o obedience_n to_o just_a law_n under_o pretence_n of_o christian_a liberty_n to_o cloak_v iniqvitie_n and_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o flesh_n their_o destuctive_a doctrine_n against_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o 6._o the_o the_o the_o presbyterian_o destroy_v all_o tradition_n against_o the_o express_a scripture_n see_v above_o p._n 445._o and_o 6._o unwritten_a word_n express_o commend_v by_o the_o write_a word_n 448._o word_n word_n they_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a even_o with_o god_n grace_n to_o keep_v his_o law_n in_o observation_n whereof_o all_o perfection_n substantial_o consist_v and_o so_o indeed_o they_o destroy_v the_o end_n and_o perfection_n of_o the_o law_n see_v above_o ch_n 13._o 14._o and_o sect_n 5._o p._n 448._o against_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o perfection_n against_o the_o triple_a 449._o triple_a triple_a they_o destroy_v the_o office_n of_o christ_n as_o king_n by_o spoil_v he_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o church_n for_o many_o age_n they_o destroy_v his_o priestly_a office_n by_o abrogate_a the_o daily_a sacrifice_n and_o his_o prophetical_a by_o deny_v the_o accomplishment_n of_o his_o prophecy_n concern_v his_o church_n continuance_n and_o visibility_n see_v above_o p._n 449._o office_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v king_n priest_z and_o prophet_n which_o be_v a_o manifest_a corruption_n of_o the_o bless_a evangel_n their_o corrupt_a doctrine_n of_o 454._o of_o of_o calvin_n teach_v that_o original_a sin_n still_o remain_v in_o we_o even_o after_o baptism_n and_o that_o it_o defile_v before_o god_n what_o ever_o work_v proceed_v from_o we_o and_o so_o make_v they_o mortal_a sin_n which_o doctrine_n the_o presbyterian_o follow_v as_o may_v be_v see_v above_o with_o more_o to_o this_o purpose_n p._n 451._o 454._o original_a sin_n which_o make_v their_o best_a action_n mortal_a sin_n our_o trial._n our_o our_o the_o presbyterian_o grant_v such_o a_o natural_a inhability_n that_o they_o deny_v all_o supernatural_a ability_n in_o man_n to_o keep_v god_n law_n even_o with_o the_o assistance_n of_o all_o his_o grace_n which_o be_v a_o most_o dangerous_a corrupt_a doctrine_n as_o may_v be_v see_v above_o p._n 454._o &_o more_o full_o ch_n 13._o 14._o of_o presb._n trial._n supernatural_a ability_n and_o dutiefull_a subjection_n to_o god_n law_n our_o justification_n by_o 157._o by_o by_o they_o make_v justification_n by_o faith_n only_o the_o principal_a article_n of_o their_o reformation_n and_o deny_v justification_n by_o work_n express_o against_o the_o scripture_n james_n 2.124_o and_o the_o holy_a father_n see_v above_o ch_n 14._o p._n 157._o work_n our_o 455._o our_o our_o they_o make_v our_o sanctification_n so_o imperfect_a that_o we_o can_v by_v it_o think_v so_o much_o as_o a_o good_a thought_n or_o do_v any_o thing_n but_o sin_n mortal_o and_o still_o disobey_v god_n commandment_n so_o that_o such_o sanctification_n be_v rather_o profanation_n and_o such_o obedience_n be_v disobedience_n see_v above_o p._n 455._o perfect_n sanctification_n and_o obedience_n through_o christ_n grace_n unto_o the_o law_n the_o trial._n the_o the_o they_o have_v corrupt_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v ordain_v to_o confer_v grace_n &_o by_o make_v they_o only_a sign_n and_o token_n they_o have_v corrupt_v the_o number_n by_o take_v away_o 5._o sacrament_n and_o the_o use_n by_o abrogate_a both_o private_a baptism_n &_o communion_n beside_o both_o the_o public_a and_o private_a use_n of_o other_o see_v above_o p._n 458._o &_o seq_fw-la and_z before_z ch_z 18._o presb._n trial._n nature_n number_n and_o use_v of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n their_o two_o 194._o two_o two_o by_o deny_v the_o two_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n which_o they_o admit_v to_o confer_v grace_n they_o make_v they_o graceless_a and_o so_o indeed_o bastard_n sacrament_n since_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n be_v institute_v to_o confer_v grace_n above_o p._n 467._o &_o before_o
that_o ch_n 18_o pres._n trial_n p._n 194._o graceless_a sacrament_n administrate_v without_o all_o holy_a 464._o holy_a holy_a they_o not_o only_o not_o practice_v the_o venerable_a rite_n &_o ceremony_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v use_v in_o the_o primitive_a time_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o coccius_n tom_fw-mi 2._o thesau_n cathol_n but_o also_o they_o condemn_v they_o see_v p._n 464._o rite_n and_o ceremony_n venerable_a for_o antiquity_n command_v by_o lawful_a authority_n and_o not_o contrary_a to_o the_o true_a doctrine_n &_o word_n of_o god_n their_o 222._o their_o their_o they_o teach_v that_o child_n die_v with_o baptism_n if_o they_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v not_o save_v whereby_o they_o suppose_v that_o all_o child_n die_v with_o baptism_n do_v not_o belong_v unto_o it_o which_o be_v a_o most_o cruel_a judgement_n see_v p._n 218._o 219._o and_o beside_o they_o suffer_v cruel_o diverse_a child_n to_o die_v without_o baptism_n for_o which_o cruelty_n k._n james_n affirm_v their_o minister_n will_v be_v damn_v see_v p._n 221._o 222._o vn-christian_n judgement_n against_o many_o child_n die_v with_o the_o sacrament_n together_o with_o their_o most_o crvel_n practise_v of_o suffer_v many_o child_n to_o die_v without_o the_o sacrament_n their_o totum_fw-la their_o their_o they_o make_v baptism_n not_o to_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o infant_n against_o the_o scripture_n and_o holy_a father_n as_o may_v be_v see_v above_o chap._n 20._o per_fw-la totum_fw-la conditional_a necessity_n or_o rather_o indifferency_n of_o the_o most_o necessary_a sacrament_n of_o baptism_n their_o more_o than_o chimerical_a imagination_n of_o the_o real_a absence_n of_o christ_n body_n from_z the_o element_n together_o with_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o same_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o their_o faithful_a receiver_n their_o 470._o their_o their_o their_o first_o reformer_n break_v their_o solemn_a oath_n and_o vow_n without_o all_o dispensation_n p._n 469._o and_o the_o presbyterian_o have_v make_v many_o to_o perjure_v themselves_o by_o enforce_v they_o to_o take_v the_o covenant_n against_o their_o conscience_n they_o allow_v also_o marriage_n in_o degree_n forbid_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o the_o people_n often_o marry_v among_o they_o in_o the_o second_o three_o and_o 4._o degree_n without_o all_o dispensation_n see_v also_o above_o that_o it_o be_v a_o false_a calumny_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n dispense_v in_o degree_n forbid_v by_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n p._n 470._o violation_n of_o solemn_a oath_n without_o dispensation_n vrge_v of_o perjury_n upon_o man_n against_o their_o conscience_n their_o allow_v of_o marriage_n in_o degree_n forbid_v by_o the_o church_n of_o god._n their_o 471._o their_o their_o they_o cruel_o allow_v marriage_n to_o the_o divorce_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n his_o apostle_n and_o the_o holy_a father_n which_o s._n augustin_n say_v be_v not_o marriage_n but_o adultery_n see_v above_o p._n 470._o 471._o impiety_n of_o allow_v adultery_n under_o the_o name_n of_o marriage_n to_o the_o divorce_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n their_o section_n their_o their_o the_o holy_a mass_n which_o chase_v away_o devil_n as_o s._n augustin_n testify_v above_o p._n 475_o can_v be_v devilish_a but_o the_o abrogation_n of_o it_o be_v devilish_a beside_o other_o reason_n because_o luther_n confess_v that_o the_o devil_n do_v instigate_v he_o to_o it_o see_v above_o p._n 476._o and_o the_o whole_a 8._o section_n devilish_a abrogation_n of_o the_o divine_a mass_n their_o 447._o their_o their_o if_o it_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o rail_v against_o the_o sacred_a order_n of_o priesthood_n of_o which_o order_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o high_a eternal_a priest_n and_o against_o the_o holy_a sacrifice_n offer_v up_o by_o that_o holy_a order_n beside_o other_o point_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n reveal_v by_o christ_n than_o our_o presbyterian_a ministry_n be_v deep_o guilty_a of_o blasphemy_n see_v p._n 477._o 4._o see_v above_o how_o s._n augustin_n call_v this_o a_o holy_a sacrifice_n profitable_a not_o only_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o live_n but_o also_o of_o the_o faithful_a depart_v of_o which_o the_o presbyterian_o do_v rob_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a p._n 447._o blaspheme_v ministry_n q_o their_o sacrilege_n of_o rob_v the_o holy_a sacrifice_n both_o from_o the_o quick_a &_o the_o dead_a their_o 479_o their_o their_o they_o detest_v the_o catholic_a church_n for_o canonise_a of_o saint_n and_o yet_o themselves_o do_v saint_n covenant_v sinner_n above_o p._n 479_o saint_n of_o covenant_a sinner_n their_o call_n upon_o heaven_n upon_o upon_o they_o think_v it_o just_o no_o sin_n to_o call_v upon_o man_n and_o desire_v their_o prayer_n and_o yet_o against_o all_o reason_n they_o will_v make_v the_o people_n believe_v that_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n to_o call_v upon_o angel_n and_o desire_v their_o prayer_n whereby_o they_o condemn_v the_o practice_n of_o jacob_n and_o other_o saint_n record_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o may_v be_v see_v p._n 479._o as_o also_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o primitive_a church_n ibidem_fw-la where_o the_o same_o be_v also_o show_v concern_v the_o invocation_n of_o the_o saint_n of_o heaven_n men_n and_o not_o upon_o angel_n and_o their_o miscal_v of_o glorious_a saint_n by_o opprobrious_a title_n their_o idolatrize_n of_o their_o own_o fancy_n and_o error_n and_o profane_v of_o holy_a image_n relic_n and_o cross_n their_o barbarous_a destroy_v of_o church_n and_o altar_n with_o their_o violate_v of_o holy_a day_n and_o vow_n make_v and_o consecrate_a to_o the_o creator_n 188._o creator_n creator_n see_v they_o common_o teach_v that_o their_o sin_n be_v not_o take_v away_o in_o this_o life_n they_o must_v either_o be_v take_v away_o in_o the_o next_o life_n and_o so_o they_o grant_v a_o purgatory_n or_o else_o they_o can_v enter_v into_o heaven_n and_o see_v that_o purgatory_n be_v for_o mortal_a sin_n for_o they_o acknowledge_v no_o venial_a it_o can_v never_o purge_v they_o and_o never_o have_v a_o end_n see_v above_o pag._n 491._o and_o more_o full_o p._n 188._o their_o endless_a vnpurge_a purgatory_n want_n purgatory_n purgatory_n see_v the_o charitable_a custom_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o faithful_a depart_v observe_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n p._n 491._o which_o charity_n the_o presbyterian_o want_n their_o mercylesse_a not_o pity_v the_o pain_n of_o the_o dead_a show_v dead_a dead_a the_o prayer_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o be_v all_o extemporary_a it_o be_v no_o wonder_n some_o of_o they_o be_v void_a of_o sense_n as_o frequent_a experience_n have_v show_v pray_v in_o a_o strange_a sense_n procession_n sense_n sense_n how_o they_o have_v fall_v backward_o into_o grosser_n error_n than_o their_o first_o reformer_n by_o deny_v the_o apostle_n creed_n neglect_v to_o say_v our_o lords-prayer_n abolish_n glory_n to_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n may_v be_v see_v above_o cha_z 12._o these_o backslide_n be_v the_o presbyterian_a procession_n backslide_n into_o grosser_n error_n 494._o error_n error_n they_o blaspheme_v the_o holy_a litany_n which_o s_n basil_n call_v the_o oracle_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n as_o may_v be_v see_v above_o p._n 494._o blaspheme_v the_o holy_a litany_n and_o prefer_v a_o multitude_n of_o 945._o of_o of_o they_o very_o unreasonable_o renounce_v the_o mediation_n or_o intercession_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n to_o pray_v for_o they_o and_o yet_o give_v that_o same_o charge_n or_o office_n to_o the_o multitude_n of_o their_o minister_n p._n 945._o minister_n to_o the_o angel_n &_o saint_n in_o the_o office_n of_o mediator_n and_o advocat_n 3._o advocat_n advocat_n their_o confusion_n &_o dissension_n be_v very_o notorious_a and_o may_v be_v see_v above_o ch_z 3._o their_o manifold_a confusion_n and_o disorder_n private_o disorder_n disorder_n they_o abjure_v auricular_a confession_n and_o yet_o sometime_o practice_v it_o but_o the_o minister_n want_v the_o strict_a obligation_n of_o secrecy_n they_o do_v sometime_o reveal_v public_o without_o punishment_n what_o have_v be_v confess_v to_o they_o private_o public_a revelation_n of_o private_a confession_n their_o 183._o their_o their_o their_o repentance_n if_o it_o be_v according_a ●o_o their_o principle_n be_v presumptuous_a for_o it_o be_v a_o full_a assurance_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n or_o conjoind_v with_o it_o and_o so_o it_o be_v also_o vain_a for_o in_o vain_a do_v they_o seek_v remission_n of_o their_o sin_n which_o they_o be_v assure_v by_o faith_n be_v already_o forgive_v they_o see_v p._n 499._o &_o ch_n 17._o p._n 183._o presumptvous_a and_o vain_a repentance_n seq_fw-la repentance_n repentance_n they_o believe_v that_o which_o god_n never_o reveal_v to_o wit_n that_o every_o one_o of_o themselves_o be_v just_a &_o predestinate_a which_o faith_n may_v be_v see_v above_o to_o be_v mere_a presumption_n and_o a_o groundless_a fancy_n
ch_n 17._o p._n 183._o &_o seq_fw-la their_o special_a and_o groundless_a faith_n 500_o faith_n faith_n they_o deny_v all_o satisfaction_n or_o work_n of_o penance_n for_o sin_n and_o so_o they_o teach_v man_n be_v not_o to_o make_v any_o satisfaction_n for_o their_o sin_n p._n 500_o their_o doctrine_n of_o sin_v without_o satisfaction_n 182._o satisfaction_n satisfaction_n they_o teach_v justification_n by_o faith_n only_o against_o the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n james_n 2._o v._o 24._o as_o may_v be_v see_v above_o ch_z 17._o p._n 182._o justification_n by_o faith_n only_a 203._o only_a only_a albeit_o some_o be_v great_a sinner_n yet_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o take_v the_o covenant_n they_o be_v esteem_v saint_n and_o all_o their_o sin_n forgive_v they_o though_o indeed_o they_o become_v no_o better_o this_o be_v a_o great_a opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la which_o the_o presbyterian_o ascribe_v to_o their_o covenant_n then_o that_o which_o the_o catholic_n assign_v to_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n as_o may_v be_v see_v above_o p._n 202._o 203._o the_o opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la of_o the_o covenant_n which_o saint_v without_o disposition_n even_o the_o worst_a covenanter_n 5●3_n covenanter_n covenanter_n they_o do_v not_o only_o abjure_v work_n of_o great_a perfection_n not_o command_v but_o counsel_v but_o also_o they_o neglect_v work_n of_o duty_n command_v teach_v hat_n the_o commandment_n be_v impossible_a to_o be_v keep_v p._n 502._o 5●3_n their_o omission_n of_o work_n of_o duty_n tend_v to_o edification_n 506._o edification_n edification_n they_o teach_v that_o all_o their_o work_n be_v evil_a and_o therefore_o be_v demerit_n which_o may_v be_v just_o renounce_v p._n 504._o 505._o 4._o they_o often_o give_v and_o sell_v pardon_n from_o their_o stool_n of_o repentance_n or_o else_o all_o the_o great_a people_n must_v be_v saint_n &_o only_o the_o poor_a must_v be_v sinner_n for_o it_o be_v very_o rare_o see_v that_o any_o person_n of_o condition_n do_v sit_v upon_o their_o stool_n of_o repentance_n see_v p._n 506._o demerit_n 508._o demerit_n demerit_n they_o brag_v that_o they_o shall_v never_o leave_v off_o till_o they_o go_v with_o their_o covenant_n &_o covenant_v army_n to_o destroy_v the_o wall_n &_o city_n of_o rome_n p._n 507._o 508._o sell_v of_o pardon_n 15_o their_o intend_a warlike_a peregrination_n to_o destroy_v holy_a place_n 508._o place_n place_n the_o english_a independent_o do_v call_v ordinary_o the_o presbyterian_a k_o rk-session_n bawdy-court_n for_o by_o they_o the_o fine_n be_v impose_v upon_o the_o fornicator_n but_o now_o that_o power_n be_v take_v from_o they_o and_o give_v to_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n these_o session_n be_v not_o so_o good_a as_o the_o catholic_n station_n above_o p._n 508._o their_o kirk_n session_n 511._o session_n session_n they_o do_v not_o consecrate_v their_o communion_n wine_n and_o albeit_o the_o minister_n say_v a_o long_a prayer_n at_o the_o beginning_n by_o which_o they_o will_v seem_v in_o some_o measure_n to_o hallow_v that_o which_o be_v present_a which_o be_v but_o a_o small_a quantity_n yet_o the_o rest_n be_v bring_v sometime_o out_o of_o the_o tavern_n and_o use_v without_o any_o benediction_n see_v of_o holy_a water_n above_o p._n 510._o 511._o vnconsecrated_a wine_n 512._o wine_n wine_n see_v above_o how_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o pretend_a reformation_n they_o unhallowed_a many_o bell_n p._n 511._o 512._o their_o unhallow_a and_o sell_v of_o bell_n their_o 512._o their_o their_o the_o true_a church_n have_v only_a power_n to_o cast_v out_o devil_n luther_n try_v once_o to_o do_v this_o but_o it_o succeed_v ill_o with_o he_o as_o may_v be_v see_v above_o p._n 512._o want_n of_o power_n to_o conjure_v spirit_n and_o cast_v out_o devil_n man_n devil_n devil_n the_o presbyterian_a minister_n do_v much_o hate_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n call_v it_o the_o badge_n of_o antichrist_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o spotswood_n history_n lib._n 6._o p._n 324._o see_v above_o p._n 513._o the_o antiquity_n &_o efficacy_n of_o that_o glorious_a sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n their_o curse_n and_o detestation_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n as_o also_o use_n also_o also_o the_o holy_a apostle_n use_v unction_n as_o may_v be_v see_v above_o p._n 514._o which_o custom_n have_v be_v ever_o observe_v in_o the_o church_n ibidem_fw-la as_o also_o the_o church_n do_v ever_o hallow_v some_o creature_n for_o holy_a end_n as_o water_n burial_n place_n church_n bell_n etc._n etc._n which_o the_o presbyterian_o have_v often_o make_v common_a and_o turn_v into_o profane_v use_n of_o unction_n &_o of_o benediction_n of_o creature_n for_o holy_a end_n together_o with_o the_o profanation_n of_o these_o hallow_a creature_n their_o domineer_a presbyterian_a ibid._n presbyterian_a presbyterian_a how_o the_o presbytery_n domineer_v over_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n may_v be_v see_v above_o ch_z 4._o and_o 5._o of_o presb._n trial_n 23._o their_o severity_n &_o cruelty_n may_v be_v see_v ibid._n democracy_n and_o 23_o cruel_a anarchy_n abjure_v anarchy_n anarchy_n their_o solemn_a league_n &_o covenant_n which_o intend_v the_o settle_n of_o presbytery_n in_o all_o the_o 3._o kingdom_n be_v not_o such_o a_o work_n of_o perfection_n as_o be_v the_o 3._o solemn_a vow_n of_o chastity_n poverty_n &_o obedience_n which_o they_o here_o abjure_v and_o which_o their_o first_o reformer_n vow_v but_o do_v not_o keep_v and_o therefore_o their_o solemn_a league_n may_v be_v better_o renounce_v then_o the_o three_o solemn_a vow_n abjure_v their_o solemn_a leagve_n and_o covenant_n with_o all_o their_o roundhead_n of_o sundry_a sect_n their_o cruel_a decree_n make_v at_o glasgow_n to_o extirpate_v the_o catholic_a religion_n where_o their_o covenant_n which_o have_v prove_v a_o bloody_a band_n be_v confirm_v against_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n and_o last_o we_o reject_v all_o their_o church_n their_o their_o see_v above_o pag._n 229._o 242._o how_o by_o trops_n and_o figure_n the_o clear_a word_n of_o christ_n institution_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v pervert_v by_o they_o against_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n vain_a trope_n and_o figure_n pervert_v the_o true_a literal_a sense_n of_o the_o divin_fw-fr scripture_n against_o the_o constant_a exposition_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n together_o with_o all_o their_o etc._n their_o their_o their_o deny_v of_o private_a baptism_n be_v a_o presbyterian_a tradition_n derive_v from_o calvin_n as_o may_v be_v see_v above_o p._n 212._o without_o or_o rather_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o same_o may_v be_v also_o say_v of_o their_o deny_v private_a communion_n etc._n etc._n presbyterian_a tradition_n bring_v in_o without_o or_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o jubaian_a the_o the_o as_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v only_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n so_o s._n cyprian_n have_v observe_v that_o all_o heretic_n like_o ape_n do_v take_v upon_o they_o the_o name_n and_o false_o vindicate_v to_o themselves_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n cypr._n epist_n ad_fw-la jubaian_a holy_a catholiqve_n church_n the_o pillar_n &_o ground_n of_o truth_n to_o the_o which_o holy_a catholic_a church_n we_o most_o willing_o join_v our_o self_n in_o doctrine_n discipline_n and_o all_o holy_a rite_n as_o member_n of_o the_o same_o under_o christ_n jesus_n the_o supreme_a invisible_a head_n and_z the_o charge_n the_o the_o see_v above_o section_n 4._o p._n 432._o where_o it_o be_v show_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v ordain_v by_o christ_n supreme_a pastor_n of_o his_o church_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succeed_v unto_o s._n peter_n in_o the_o same_o charge_n bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o visible_a and_o subordinate_a head_n or_o governor_n thereof_o trial._n thereof_o thereof_o as_o the_o catholic_a church_n remain_v constant_a in_o her_o doctrine_n and_o government_n so_o the_o scottish_a protestant_a church_n have_v be_v very_o inconstant_a for_o it_o have_v change_v diverse_a doctrine_n and_o very_o sensible_o its_o discipline_n three_o or_o four_o time_n since_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o pretend_a reformation_n so_o that_o a_o man_n can_v wise_o swear_v constant_a obedience_n to_o such_o a_o unconstant_a church_n see_v above_o ch_n 2._o and_o 7._o of_o presb._n trial._n promise_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n to_o continue_v in_o the_o obedience_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o same_o church_n all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n 15._o life_n life_n as_o it_o be_v a_o malicious_a calumny_n to_o say_v that_o any_o catholic_a be_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o pope_n to_o deny_v and_o abjure_v the_o catholic_a religion_n against_o his_o conscience_n upon_o hope_n of_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n so_o it_o be_v a_o know_a truth_n by_o diverse_a fresh_a experience_n
511._o 512._o baptise_v of_o bell_n conjure_v of_o spirit_n cross_v save_v anoint_v conjure_a hallow_a of_o god_n good_a creature_n with_o the_o superstitious_a opinion_n join_v therewith_o his_o worldly_a ibid._n worldly_a worldly_a how_o the_o presbytery_n domineer_v over_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n may_v be_v see_v above_o ch_z 4._o and_o 5._o of_o presb._n trial_n 23._o their_o severity_n &_o cruelty_n may_v be_v see_v ibid._n monarchy_n and_o wicked_a hierarchy_n 23_o his_fw-la three_o solemn_a abjure_v solemn_a solemn_a their_o solemn_a league_n &_o covenant_n which_o intend_v the_o settle_n of_o presbytery_n in_o all_o the_o 3._o kingdom_n be_v not_o such_o a_o work_n of_o perfection_n as_o be_v the_o 3._o solemn_a vow_n of_o chastity_n poverty_n &_o obedience_n which_o they_o here_o abjure_v and_o which_o their_o first_o reformer_n vow_v but_o do_v not_o keep_v and_o therefore_o their_o solemn_a league_n may_v be_v better_o renounce_v then_o the_o three_o solemn_a vow_n abjure_v vow_n with_o all_o his_o shaveling_n of_o sundry_a sort_n his_o corrupt_a and_o bloody_a decree_n make_v at_o trent_n with_o all_o the_o subscriber_n and_o approver_n of_o that_o cruel_a and_o bloody_a band_n conjure_v against_o the_o kirk_n of_o god_n and_o final_o we_o detest_v all_o his_o church_n his_o his_o see_v above_o pag._n 229._o 242._o how_o by_o trops_n and_o figure_n the_o clear_a word_n of_o christ_n institution_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v pervert_v by_o they_o against_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n vain_a allegory_n rite_n sign_n and_o etc._n and_o and_o their_o deny_v of_o private_a baptism_n be_v a_o presbyterian_a tradition_n derive_v from_o calvin_n as_o may_v be_v see_v above_o p._n 212._o without_o or_o rather_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o same_o may_v be_v also_o say_v of_o their_o deny_v private_a communion_n etc._n etc._n tradition_n bring_v in_o the_o kirk_n without_o or_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o doctrine_n of_o this_o true_a jubaian_a true_a true_a as_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v only_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n so_o s._n cyprian_n have_v observe_v that_o all_o heretic_n like_o ape_n do_v take_v upon_o they_o the_o name_n and_o false_o vindicate_v to_o themselves_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n cypr._n epist_n ad_fw-la jubaian_a reform_a kirk_n to_o the_o which_o we_o join_v ourselves_o willing_o in_o doctrine_n faith_n religion_n discipline_n and_o use_v of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n as_o lively_a member_n of_o the_o same_o in_o christ_n our_o head_n trial._n head_n head_n as_o the_o catholic_a church_n remain_v constant_a in_o her_o doctrine_n and_o government_n so_o the_o scottish_a protestant_a church_n have_v be_v very_o inconstant_a for_o it_o have_v change_v diverse_a doctrine_n and_o very_o sensible_o its_o discipline_n three_o or_o four_o time_n since_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o pretend_a reformation_n so_o that_o a_o man_n can_v wise_o swear_v constant_a obedience_n to_o such_o a_o unconstant_a church_n see_v above_o ch_n 2._o and_o 7._o of_o presb._n trial._n promise_v &_o swear_v by_o the_o great_a name_n of_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n that_o we_o shall_v continue_v in_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o doctrine_n &_o discipline_n of_o this_o kirk_n and_o shall_v defend_v the_o same_o according_a to_o our_o vocation_n &_o power_n all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n under_o the_o pain_n contain_v in_o the_o law_n and_o danger_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n in_o the_o day_n of_o god_n fearful_a judgement_n 15._o judgement_n judgement_n as_o it_o be_v a_o malicious_a calumny_n to_o say_v that_o any_o catholic_a be_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o pope_n to_o deny_v and_o abjure_v the_o catholic_a religion_n against_o his_o conscience_n upon_o hope_n of_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n so_o it_o be_v a_o know_a truth_n by_o diverse_a fresh_a experience_n that_o many_o catholic_n have_v be_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o presbyterian_a minister_n for_o fear_n of_o their_o excommunication_n and_o the_o confiscation_n of_o their_o estate_n which_o follow_v thereupon_o to_o swear_v and_o subscribe_v the_o covenant_n against_o the_o light_n of_o their_o conscience_n as_o be_v well_o know_v to_o the_o say_a minister_n which_o may_v be_v see_v above_o p._n 414._o and_o 15._o and_o see_v many_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o satan_n and_o that_o roman_a anti-christ_n to_o promise_v swear_v subscribe_v and_o for_o a_o time_n use_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o kirk_n deceitful_o against_o their_o own_o conscience_n mind_v thereby_o first_o under_o the_o external_a cloak_n of_o religion_n to_o corrupt_v &_o subvert_v secret_o god_n true_a religion_n within_o the_o kirk_n and_o afterward_o when_o time_n may_v serve_v to_o become_v open_a enemy_n and_o persecutor_n of_o the_o same_o upon_o vain_a hope_n of_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n devise_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o his_o great_a confusion_n and_o their_o double_a condemnation_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n faith_n jesus_n jesus_n all_o these_o to_o who_o god_n have_v make_v the_o light_n of_o truth_n to_o shine_v aught_o to_o be_v thankful_a for_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n and_o never_o commit_v so_o great_a ingratitude_n as_o to_o abandon_v it_o for_o worldly_a respect_n how_o much_o more_o ought_v they_o to_o abhor_v from_o take_v the_o covenant_n which_o make_v even_o some_o protestant_n heart_n to_o stand_n which_o contain_v so_o many_o gross_a untruth_n as_o we_o have_v see_v above_o &_o which_o be_v not_o only_o a_o denial_n but_o a_o abjuration_n join_v with_o horrible_a blasphemy_n of_o almost_o all_o the_o point_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n we_o therefore_o willing_a to_o take_v away_o all_o suspicion_n of_o hypocrisy_n and_o double_a deal_n with_o god_n &_o his_o kirk_n protest_v and_o call_v the_o searcher_n of_o all_o heart_n forwitnesse_n that_o our_o mind_n and_o heart_n do_v full_o agree_v with_o this_o our_o confession_n promise_n oath_n &_o subscription_n so_o that_o we_o be_v not_o move_v for_o any_o 416._o any_o any_o see_v above_o in_o the_o first_o section_n this_o last_o gross_a untruth_n of_o the_o covenant_n p._n 416._o worldly_a respect_n etc._n etc._n finis_fw-la soli_fw-la deo_fw-la honour_n &_o gloria_fw-la
s._n ambrose_n let_v we_o therefore_o keep_v the_o precept_n of_o our_o elder_n and_o not_o with_o temerity_n of_o rude_a presumption_n violate_v those_o seal_n descend_v to_o we_o by_o inheritance_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n origen_n write_v in_o our_o understanding_n say_v he_o of_o the_o scripture_n 〈◊〉_d orig._n tract_n 27._o 〈◊〉_d we_o must_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o first_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n nor_o believe_v otherwise_o but_o as_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v by_o succession_n deliver_v unto_o us._n by_o this_o way_n also_o all_o heresy_n have_v be_v clear_o discover_v &_o condemn_v 8._o theodoret_n l._n 1._o hist_o c._n 8._o theodoret_n express_o witness_v that_o the_o heresy_n of_o arius_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o doctrine_n not_o write_v which_o have_v be_v always_o profess_v in_o the_o church_n for_o there_o be_v no_o end_n by_o scripture_n the_o arian_n pretend_v that_o as_o well_o as_o the_o catholic_n tertullian_n say_v there_o be_v no_o good_a get_v by_o dispute_v out_o of_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o either_o to_o make_v a_o man_n sick_a or_o mad_a and_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o albeit_o you_o will_v bring_v never_o so_o clear_a scripture_n the_o heretic_n will_v expound_v all_o according_a to_o their_o pleasure_n and_o they_o never_o fail_v also_o to_o bring_v scripture_n for_o themselves_o so_o that_o the_o victory_n be_v uncertain_a or_o not_o so_o evident_a but_o by_o the_o constant_a belief_n of_o the_o church_n all_o heretic_n be_v clear_o confound_v s._n athanasius_n by_o this_o mean_n confound_v the_o arian_n behold_v say_v he_o we_o have_v prove_v the_o succession_n of_o our_o doctrine_n deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n from_o father_n to_o son_n but_o as_o for_o you_o o_o new_a jew_n and_o son_n of_o caiphas_n con_n athanas_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr decret_a niceni_n con_n what_o progenitor_n can_v you_o name_n for_o your_o selus_fw-la by_o this_o mean_n also_o the_o error_n of_o rebaptise_v those_o who_o have_v be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n be_v refute_v and_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o contrary_a prevail_v over_o all_o s._n cyprian_n reason_n and_o many_o authority_n collect_v from_o the_o scripture_n 9_o aug._n lib._n 2_o the_o bapt_a c._n 9_o as_o yet_o say_v s._n augustin_n there_o have_v be_v no_o general_n council_n assemble_v in_o that_o behalf_n but_o the_o world_n be_v hold_v in_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o custom_n which_o be_v oppose_v to_o those_o who_o will_v bring_v in_o that_o novelty_n s._n stephen_n pope_n and_o martyr_n write_v to_o s._n cyprian_n in_o these_o word_n nihil_fw-la innovetur_fw-la nisi_fw-la quod_fw-la traditum_fw-la est_fw-la let_v nothing_o be_v change_v nothing_o receive_v but_o what_o have_v be_v deliver_v hereupon_o i_o propose_v this_o difficulty_n that_o some_o thing_n be_v believe_v after_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o general_n council_n which_o be_v not_o believe_v before_o therefore_o it_o will_v seem_v that_o the_o church_n have_v not_o always_o rely_v on_o that_o principle_n to_o believe_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o constant_a testimony_n of_o their_o immediate_a ancestor_n to_o which_o the_o catholic_a answer_v that_o the_o clear_n of_o this_o difficulty_n will_v manifest_v the_o strength_n &_o evidence_n of_o the_o former_a proof_n first_o say_v he_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o principal_a if_o not_o all_o the_o point_v maintain_v by_o catholic_n and_o now_o question_v by_o protestant_n do_v ever_o appear_v external_o in_o the_o profession_n &_o practice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o be_v not_o define_v by_o anterior_a council_n therefore_o according_a to_o s._n augustins_n rule_n they_o be_v apostolical_a 24._o aug._n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la baptis_fw-la c._n 24._o for_o that_o say_v he_o which_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v hold_v and_o be_v not_o institute_v by_o counsel_n but_o have_v be_v still_o retain_v in_o the_o church_n be_v most_o just_o believe_v to_o have_v descend_v from_o no_o other_o authority_n than_o from_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o this_o objection_n make_v nothing_o for_o the_o benefit_n of_o protestant_n who_o condemn_v many_o thing_n which_o be_v public_o &_o universal_o profess_v and_o practise_v in_o the_o church_n before_o they_o be_v by_o any_o council_n authorize_v second_o these_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v determine_v by_o general_a counsel_n be_v not_o define_v as_o new_a doctrine_n for_o either_o they_o be_v general_o &_o constant_o believe_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n till_o some_o heretic_n begin_v violent_o to_o oppose_v they_o or_o there_o be_v some_o point_v not_o so_o general_o believe_v &_o practise_v throughout_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o some_o catholic_n do_v with_o submission_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n doubt_v of_o they_o now_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o church_n in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o first_o kind_n believe_v the_o same_o thing_n after_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o general_n council_n which_o she_o believe_v before_o as_o we_o have_v see_v out_o of_o s._n athanasius_n concern_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v believe_v as_o well_o before_o the_o great_a council_n of_o nice_a as_o after_o it_o neither_o be_v these_o other_o point_n of_o which_o some_o catholic_n doubt_v define_v as_o new_a doctrine_n but_o the_o whole_a church_n assemble_v in_o a_o general_n council_n after_o due_a examination_n have_v find_v these_o point_n to_o have_v descend_v by_o sufficient_a &_o approve_a testimony_n or_o tradition_n and_o be_v assist_v by_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o his_o body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n &_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o guide_n of_o it_o according_a to_o our_o saviour_n promise_n &_o special_a necessary_a providence_n over_o his_o church_n propose_v they_o to_o be_v universal_o believe_v without_o any_o more_o doubt_n and_o whosoever_o after_o this_o definition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n &_o of_o her_o supreme_a authority_n call_v these_o thing_n any_o more_o in_o question_n become_v heretic_n &_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o all_o good_a christian_n who_o have_v any_o doubt_n before_o for_o want_v of_o the_o church_n proposeall_a have_v now_o get_v that_o do_v acquiesce_v and_o be_v put_v out_o of_o all_o doubt_n for_o to_o oppose_v the_o whole_a church_n ●anuar_fw-la aug._n epist_n 118._o ad_fw-la ●anuar_fw-la as_o s._n augustin_n observe_v will_v be_v most_o insolent_a madness_n this_o whole_a matter_n be_v clear_a in_o the_o question_n of_o rebaptisation_n for_o it_o be_v decide_v by_o a_o general_n council_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n or_o tradition_n which_o be_v oppose_v before_o the_o council_n to_o s._n cyprian_n therefore_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n &_o be_v believe_v before_o the_o council_n although_o some_o do_v not_o know_v it_o to_o be_v such_o till_o the_o church_n do_v interpose_v her_o supreme_a authority_n &_o declare_v it_o to_o be_v so_o s._n augustin_n show_v how_o much_o himself_o rely_v on_o this_o judgement_n and_o that_o s._n cyprian_a will_v have_v yield_v to_o it_o if_o in_o his_o time_n it_o have_v be_v interpose_v 4._o aug_n lib._n ●_o de_fw-mi bapt_v c._n 4._o neither_o dare_v we_o say_v he_o affirm_v any_o such_o thing_n if_o we_o be_v not_o well_o ground_v upon_o the_o most_o uniform_a authority_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n unto_o which_o undoubted_o s._n cyprian_n also_o will_v have_v yield_v if_o in_o his_o time_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o question_n have_v be_v clear_v &_o declare_v &_o by_o a_o general_n council_n establish_v upon_o the_o other_o part_n these_o who_o after_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o council_n maintaynd_v the_o same_o error_n of_o rebaptisation_n be_v esteem_v heretic_n 9_o vincent_n count_v he_o es_fw-mi c._n 9_o which_o make_v s._n vincentius_n cry_v out_o thus_o o_o admirable_a change_n the_o author_n of_o one self_o opinion_n be_v call_v catholic_n and_o the_o follower_n of_o it_o heretic_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o difference_n be_v because_o as_o s._n augustin_n observe_v a_o err_a disputer_n may_v be_v suffer_v in_o other_o question_n not_o diligent_o try_v not_o as_o yet_o strengthen_v by_o the_o full_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n apostol_n aug._n serm_n 14_o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la apostol_n in_o these_o matter_n a_o error_n may_v be_v suffer_v but_o after_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o be_v the_o high_a authority_n on_o earth_n have_v past_a and_o condemn_v any_o error_n than_o it_o be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v suffer_v then_o these_o who_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n be_v by_o our_o saviour_n command_n to_o be_v esteem_v as_o heathen_n &_o publican_n by_o which_o the_o difficulty_n propose_v be_v clear_o answer_v &_o the_o proof_n stand_v good_a that_o the_o church_n have_v always_o believe_v that_o which_o from_o father_n to_o son_n have_v be_v deliver_v